The Grounds Of RELIGION. Perlegi hunc libellum, in quo nihil reperio orthodoxae fidei vel bonis moribus contrarium, quo minus cum publicâ utilitate imprimi possit. Ex Aed. Sabaud. Decemb. 24. 1661. GEORG. straddling, S. Th. Dr. Rev. in Christo Patris Gilberti Episc. Lond. Sacellanus Domesticus. SOLOMON'S GATE, or An Entrance into the Church, Being A Familiar Explanation of the Grounds of Religion contained In the Fowr Heads of CATECHISM, viz. The Lord's Prayer. The Apostles Creed. The Ten Commandments. The Sacraments. Fitted to Vulgar Understanding. By A. L. 1 Cor. XIV. XXVI. Let all things be done to Edification. LONDON Printed by R. DANIEL, 1662. To the Most Illustrious Princess ANNE Duchess of YORK, etc. Increase of Grace Here, & the Improved Rewards of Glory Hereafter. MADAM, THe Design of This plain Treatise being to Infuse Notions of Peace & Obedience into the Minds of the Multitude, by a familiar Declaration of the Grounds of Christianity, I could not think how to recommend it to public Use with fairer Advantage, then from Your Highness' Hands; who, as You are in Your Person, both for Natural Endowments and Moral Excellencies, the Miroir of Your Sex: so in Your Relations, are the Wife of a Prince, whose Heroical Virtues rendered Him the Delight & Terror of Foreign Nations; and the Daughter of a Statesman, whose Wisdom is the Pillar of public Interest, and His Counsels the Buttress of our Peace. Indeed the Subject doth of itself challenge a Reverence from the Reader, & Usefulness is a just Apology for Plainness, besides that Sacred Truths show best when they are seen in their own Light, and have that Native Beauty about them, that they stand not in need of Additional Helps of Art: Yet to secure the Author from that Censure, & the Work from that Contempt, which the Vulgar Dress and mean Language, they appear in, is too apt to Betray them to; the Lustre of so Great a Patronage was even to Necessity Convenient, and will beyond all Doubt be Sufficient. Your Highness' Name will be Amulet against the Censorious, & Charm to the Rude. Wherefore that I have thus for the Public sake presumed to Address a particular Respect, will (I hope) be Interpreted a pardonable Ambition in Him, who is MADAM, Your Highness most Humble and Devoted Servant ADAM LITTLETON. To the REVEREND, My ever Honoured Father, Mr. THOMAS LITTLETON, RECTOR of Suckley in the Diocese of Worcester. Honoured Father, THat old complaint of St. Jerom, that Divinity is become every one's Trade, was never more seasonable then of late times amongst us; when all Professions invaded the Pulpit, and God's word was rudely handled by those that were Bunglers at their own trades. To vindicate me from that imputation of unseemly meddling with sacred things, if my Education, which hath been all along in Letters, and the Employment I am in, which requires of me sometimes to perform the place of Catechist, will not serv: yet the Relation, which I and this Treatise both have to yourself, will abundantly plead a defence. For if the Church hath accepted services of this nature from several of her sons in the Laity; then I hope, I that am not only a Son of the Church, but the Son of a Churchman too, shall escape censure; especially, when I own myself in this small work no other than your Amanuensis, and do but copy out those notions of Truth and Duty, wherewith you by your early institutions seasoned my Youth: So that in effect, the Book I present you, is as much your child, as the Writer of it, and this Explanation, what it is, is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Filia vocis, (the veneration I owe to a Father will justify the Allusion; I mean) the Echo, the rebound and report at distance of your Instructions, and those discourses you made a score of years ago, at Hales-Owen. Sir, It was then your custom constantly on Sunday-afternoons, with all familiar plainness, to set forth the Grounds of Religion, and Principles of Christianity; an exercise (though performed in the Desk) of as great necessity, and tending as much to edification, as that other (I was going to say) Idolised way of Preaching. Yet the sad truth is, that in this age of disorders, Preaching hath not been so much abused, as Catechising (with other holy ordinances) hath been disused. And indeed, to this neglect we may mainly impute most other miscarriages. When the Groundwork sinks, 'tis no wonder if the Building totter, and run to decay; and if these Foundations should be shaken, it may justly be feared that the whole Fabric of Church and State will go to ruin, and fall into confusion. An ungrounded Christian will be easily persuaded to give himself up to any wild opinion or loose practice, to turn Heretic or Rebel, and prove a fit Instrument for the managery of Satan's designs. I must confess, that much hath been writ already upon these Subjects; so that the very Titles of those Books, which have been intended Comments, and Expositions of Catechetical Heads, and Enarrations of the Grounds of Religion, would take up more paper than this whole Discourse wastes: And I know there are many Excellent Treatises of this kind, even in our own Language; yet I have not met with any one hitherto, that hath comprehended all the Rudiments of Christian Doctrine (for so I think I may safely call these Heads of Catechism) in one Manual, or delivered the plain meaning of them in so familiar a Phrase & Method. For whilst others engage in controversy, and spin out all School-Divinity out of these plain Truths, and fill their margin with quotations out of the Fathers, and accommodate Humane Learning to Sacred purposes; as if they meant to print only Ad Clerum, laying out their vast abilities out of the People's reach: I judged it more suitable to public Use, and to the scant measures of my Skill, to give only a Grammatical account by an easy Paraphrase and exegetical interpretation of every clause, word by word, and then of the whole sentence together. Nor have I been wanting, as occasions have invited, up and down to bring in Practical considerations, nor feared sometimes to enter the Lists against the Romanists and (their Proselytes) our Sectaries; yet not so as to fetch in strength from Authority without, but make use of those weapons only, the present place afforded me. I have been the larger in my Discant upon the Lord's Prayer; becasue indeed it is the Ground of all Liturgy. In the Creed I did not think it safe or fit to mention those old Heresies so long since exploded, for fear lest a weak Confutation should teach them; (seeing there have been too many in our late Separations, too industrious to revive them, and bring them into Credit;) but contented myself with a short, and (I hope) Orthodox explication of the Mysteries of our Faith. When I was upon the Decalogue, I could not but make National reflections upon each Commandment, yet so as to convince the whole People, not to upbraid any one Party: For though the Act of Oblivion enjoins us to forget Injuries done to Men, yet Religion will oblige us to remember our Sins against God. The Sacraments I have handled with that brevity, that I have not there much insisted on the Rites, wherewith our Church administers them; but elsewhere in the Book have in the general offered somewhat to their defence. Where I plead Admission of all to the holy Table, I would not be understood to speak for those which are under Church-censures. On every of these parts I have said little of the much which might have been said, and for aught that I know nothing that has been said by others, having had a special care all the way of the Eighth Commandment. Sir, You are the only Author that I have consulted, and these sheets have not been the travail so much of my Invention as of my Memory; while I have been recovering those Notices, your Institution lodged in my young head and heart. Wherefore what I have failed in Elegance of expression, or Solidity of matter, I must first here beg your Pardon for, (seeing that contrary to the method of the Resurrection, what was sown in strength is now ra●s'd in weakness:) And next crave your Blessing upon the Book and Me, that God would make us both serviceable to the Public; For I very well understand, what hazard of censure I run, by appearing thus in Print; and what Obligations I now lay upon myself to walk carefully, and order my conversation aright; since he that puts forth a Book of Religion, and leads an irreligious life, doth but libel himself, and scandalise his Book, Sir, As it was your great care and love to send me in my younger years to several places for my education, so 'twas my no less happiness that I was principled in Religion by yourself, and though Scholar to sundry Masters, was your Catechumenus. I thought it then the most fitting Gratitude to return you what I received, and design your own Instructions the Memorial of my Duty. That the God of all Consolation would crown your Old age with Honour and joy, and after these many years of Suffering and Persecution (wherein you have had so large a share) heap upon you the blessings of Peace and a long Life, that you may see and partake the prosperity of Jerusalem, shall be the daily prayer of, Dear Father, St. Thomas-day, 1661. Your most dutiful and obedient Son Adam Littleton. Sentences out of Scrip ure. Heb. V. 12. FOr when for the time ye ought to be Teachers, ye have need that one teach you again, which be the first Principles of the oracles of God, and are become such as have need of milk, & not of strong meat. 1 Tim. I. 13. Hold fast the Form of sound Words, which thou hast heard of me, in Faith, and Love, which is in Christ jesus. Prov. XXII. 6. Train up [or Catechise] a Child in the way he should go; and when he is old, he will not depart from it. Psal. XXXIV. 11, 12, 13, 14. Come, ye Children, harken unto me: I will teach you the fear of the Lord. What man is he that desireth life, and loveth many days, that he may see good? Keep thy Tongue from evil, & thy lips from speaking guile. Depart from evil, & do good; seek Peace; and pursue it. Prov. IU. 23. Keep thy Heart with all diligence, [or, above all keeping:] for out of it are the issues of life. Psalm CXI. 10. The fear of the Lord is the beginning of Wisdom; a good Understanding [or, good success] have all they that do his Commandments. Eccles. XII. 13. Let us hear the Conclusion of the whole matter; Fear God, and Keep his Commandments; for this is THE WHOLE DUTY OF MAN. An Explanation of the GROUNDS OF RELIGION. RELIGION is the Fear of God, i.e. the acknowledging & worshipping of God. God is known by his Works and by his Word. There was never any Nation which did not profess the worship of God. An Atheist was always counted a monster. Now most Countries following Nature as their guide, have mistaken either in the matter or manner of their worship. The Heathens therefore, such as Indians, Scythians, Turks, etc. worship either a false God, or with false worship. But God's people being guided by the light of Scripture, do embrace the true Religion; the jewish Church in the time of the Law, the Christian Church under the Gospel. For after the coming of Christ, the Religion of the jews hath now no longer use, since it was but a shadow and type of Christ to come. For Christ the Sun of Righteousness being risen, the Ceremonies like shadows are scattered and fled away. Christian Religion than is that Doctrine, which Christ himself taught when he was on earth, confirmed by miracles and holiness of Life, and sealed with his precious Blood dying on the Cross. Christian Religion is at large contained in the holy Scriptures, i.e. in the writings of the Prophets and Apostles, who were the Pen men of the holy Ghost; But it is chiefly comprised in the four Heads of Catechism, which we call the Principles of Religion. Now Catechism is a brief and plain Institution, which explains the Mysteries of Faith, and the Duties of a holy Life, in that manner, that they may be easily understood by any, even the most vulgar apprehension: Wherefore 'tis called the Sincere milk of the Word, as being fitted to the capacity of little children, which as yet cannot bear more weighty discourses, which are compared to solid meat. This Doctrine than is plain that it may be received by the Understanding, and short that it may be held in Memory; yet full too that it may instruct us in all things necessary to salvation. For it is made up of four parts, whereof the First teacheth us what we are to believe concerning God and the Church; the Second, what duty we owe to God and man; the Third describes a method of praying; the Fourth delivers those Sacred seals, by which this doctrine is confirmed. The Confession of Faith is set down in the Apostles Creed. The Law of God contained in the Ten Commandments is the Rule of life. The Lord's Prayer is a most absolute form and pattern of Prayer. And lastly the two Sacraments of Baptism, and the Holy Supper, are instead of Seals. These are the Pillars, upon which not only the Church, but every faithful soul is in the Spirit built up to perfect knowledge and blessedness, to grace and glory. AN EXPLANATION Of the LORD'S PRAYER. The Lord's Prayer. OUr Father which art in heaven. Hallowed be thy Name. Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done in earth, as it is in heaven. Give us this day our daily bread. And forgive us our trespasses, as we forgive them that trespass against us. And lead us not into temptation; but deliver us from evil. For thine is the kingdom, the power, and the glory, for ever and ever. Amen. The LORDS PRAYER. PRAYER is a calling upon God in time of want or distress; and a returning of praise for blessings received, or deliverances obtained: Or indeed more generally, and suitably to the nature of this holy exercise, abstracting it from our occasions; 'tis a Meditation upon God, his essence and his Attributes; his Word and his Works; and an acknowledgement of his power and wisdom and goodness, whereby he order all things to his own glory and our good. It is indeed the special act of God's worship; for Adoration is nothing else, but a praying to him, whom we adore: Whereupon a Qui singit sacros auro vel marmore vultus▪ Non facit ille Deos; qui rogat, ille facit. Mart. the heathen well observed, that 'twas not he that graves the idol, but he that prays to it, which consecrates the Deity. This is sure, that his Religion may well be questioned, who useth not to pray; though 'tis true too, that prayer may be abused to wrong ends, even to devour widow's houses, nay to eat up God's own House. Now the grounds of Prayer are laid in the nature of God, and the relation which he hath to us; who, as he is our Creator and preserver, challenges this homage; whence the Psalmist frequently invites all our fellow creatures to this duty, & brings us altogether into one choir to praise the Lord. And the very instinct of nature, hath taught ravenous beasts, b Non tam praedari quam precari. not so much to pray as to pray; the young Lions, and the young Ravens in their hunger cry to him, and he feeds them, and fills every thing living with his blessing. Nor doth our relation so much as our want make prayer necessary; for we depend upon him, both as to the life of nature and of grace; nor are we able to subsist or act without his constant help. Therefore that precept is no more, than nature dictates to us, c 1 Thess. 5. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in the precept; in Cornelius his practice 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Act. 10. 2. Pray without ceasing, or continually, that is, In every time, In every place, In every business: The main thing in Prayer being to lift up the soul, to carry God in our thoughts, and have our conversation in Heaven; as the man after Gods own heart saith of himself, I have set the Lord always before me. And in the presence of so glorious a Majesty there cannot choose but be an humble, reverend, fervent, cheerful frame of spirit, a mind well tuned, and the affections so ordered, the thoughts so composed, as if one were always in an actual devotion. Now God's Nature makes it as convenient for us to go to him in prayer, as our Interest makes it necessary: for, as he was pleased to call Abraham (that had frequent intercourses with him in this kind) his friend; He hath all the qualities, which should be taken notice of in the choice of a friend. He wants neither will nor skill to do us all imaginable good; He hath kindness to intend us good, wisdom to contrive it, and power to accomplish it. Nor are the other Attributes idle in our behalf; For 'tis his Mercy to promise us help, and his justice to perform his promise: and the like may be said of the rest. Then what a privilege is it, that a poor creature, dust and ashes may freely speak to his maker? That we who dwell in houses of clay may keep up a commerce with heaven? that sinful creatures as we are have access to the throne of Grace with boldness, and may challenge a hearing in God's Court of Chancery? d Gen. 18. 25. Shall not the judge of all the earth (saith he) do right? And any sinner may sue for his pardon with the same plea. Shall not justice acquit me, since mercy hath accepted my surety? Is it not enough, that my debt hath been once paid? Christ hath died for my sins, and my soul shall live. Nay, let our case be what it will, God himself hath afforded us such Arguments, as he will not stand out. Shall he that hath given me a life, deny me food? shall he that hath given me a body, deny me raiment? He that hath given me his Son, will not he much more give me all things else? Thus Prayer is not only like Iacob's wrestling with God upon earth, but his scaling ladder too, to reach heaven; whilst Prayers ascend to fetch down blessings, and blessings descend to fetch up praises. Lastly, let's but look to the advantages that come by praying, and me thinks no body should be so ill natured to himself as to neglect it. What is't, but ask and have? and will any one be so lazy, as to refuse the pains of ask? He deserves not bread to put in his mouth, that will not open a proud mouth to ask it. We have God's word for't in several places, that his kindness he rates so cheap, that it shall be had for ask. e Matt. 7. 7. Ask, and it shall be given you. And our Saviour passeth his word, f joh. 14. 13, 14. that whatsoever we shall ask in his name, he will do it. Can any thing be purchased at a lower rate, then ask? This is the buying without money and without price. Doth a man want wisdom, counsel, help? Doth a sinner want grace, pardon, strength? Doth a Saint want light, comfort, rest? Let him but come and ask, he shall find God readier to give, than himself was to ask; who sometimes answers prayers before they are made, and counts it one of his greatest titles, that he is a hearer of Prayer; But some ask and have not; Because, g jam. 4. 3. as the Apostle saith, they ask amiss. Wherefore he that would pray aright, so that he may obtain, must come prepared & furnished with those Graces, which may make him accepted. h Psal. 19 14. Let the words of my mouth and the meditation of my heart be acceptable in thy sight. We must not rush into so great a presence; (for i Psal. 5. 5. the foolish shall not stand before thee:) but consider the Majesty of God, and our own vileness, being deeply affected with the sense of his goodness, and man's misery; and premeditate before hand what we have to say, and how; and indeed pray before we go to pray, that God will prepare our hearts for prayer. For so the Psalmist resolves the success of Prayer; k Psal. 10. 17. Thou shalt prepare (or direct) their heart, and shalt cause thy ear to hear. And though all the graces, like a bed of spices, are upon this occasion to breath forth their sweet odours; yet some have a more particular employment, such as are, Reverence in our high thoughts of God, Humility in our low thoughts of ourselves, Trust to rely upon his goodness, and Patience to wait his time, Knowledge that we may understand in some measure the nature of God, and Obedience that we may sincerely perform his will, Zeal which may inflame and raise our affections towards him, and Constancy which may keep us in a daily practice of this Deity. And to those, which call upon him so, God will be near, and will either do that which they ask, or something which may be better for them. Who comes irreverently puts an affront upon God, which an earthly Prince would not brook. He that is possessed with an awe of greatness, will take heed how he demeans himself before it. Reverence then draws with it attention, which will drive away vain thoughts, as l Gen. 15. 11. Abraham scared the birds from the sacrifice. We cannot in reason expect, that God should take notice of us, if we mind not him; or hear those prayers, which the Speaker himself regards not. Who leaves Humility behind him doth but personate a devotion, and plays, rather than prays. He may please himself, or others it may be, with acting a pompous part; but God resists the proud, nor doth the boasting Pharisee go home justified. Now Humility is chiefly seated in the mind, but it expresses itself too in the outward parts, and prescribes the posture of kneeling, bowing, falling flat upon the face: nor was the Publican less humbled, when he stood afar off and prayed. Who would seek to God, if he durst not trust him, but looked upon him, either as a downright enemy, or an unsteady friend? we must bring the confidence of children, if we look to have the kindness of a Father. The Apostle hath said it, that m jam. 1. 6, 7. he that prays doubting and with wavering, shall go without; so that who asks with distrust, bespeaks a denial. Nor yet must this confidence be so bold, as to limit God to means how, or appoint him his time when. God's own times are best; n Psal. 31. 16. our seasons are in his hand: and 'tis not for us even in this sense to know the times and the seasons. Moreover he works without means as well as with means, and the unlikelier the means, the likelier for God's service; the first cause virtuates the second: therefore the assurance that God will grant, must be attended with patience, i.e. a quiet expectation, till it please God to answer us in his own way. He that will not stay God's leisure, deserves not his answer. o Isa. 28. 16. He that believes, saith the Prophet, shall not make haste; which the Apostle quotes thus, p Rom. 10. 11. He that believes shall not be ashamed, that is, disappointed; And that is the next, to wit. Faith, by which we apprehend and get knowledge of God; For he that addresseth to him q Heb. 11. 6. must first believe that he is, and that he is a rewarder of them that seek him. God is not pleased with the sacrifice of fools; The best service we can perform, if it be not enlivened with saith, is at the best but a carcase of duty, and like that cheat Plutarch mentions, of an ox's bones covered with the hide, and intended a sacrifice when the flesh and entrails were gone. Nor will a naked faith serve turn, to make this oblation acceptable; unless it be clothed with good works. There must be obedience, as well as knowledge; a sincere heart as well as an orthodox head; nor is't less fit, that pure hands should be lifted up to God in prayer, then devout eyes: And therefore this Prayer is accompanied by both Creed & Decalogue; both of them having an influence upon it; since we cannot pray as we should, without having respect to both Faith & manners; seeing that r Heb. 11. 6. without Faith 'tis impossible to please God, and s Psal. 112. 10. the desire of the wicked (as well as their t Psal. 1. 6. way) shall perish. Prayer is sometimes termed a sacrifice; now that can't be offered without fire: There must be then all the affections in a flame, For v jam. 5. 16. the fervent Prayer of the righteous availeth much, and u Rev. 8. 3. the Prayers of the Saints are presented by Christ to his Father, mixed with the sweet odours of his intercession, in a censer. Zeal was that fiery chariot, wherein Elias road to Heaven; who had that great command over heaven, while he was on earth, by his praying, that he could with this key of David either open or shut it at his pleasure. Yet we must take heed of bringing strange fire, the ignis fatuus of a new Light, or the glimmering taper of an ignorant devotion, but fetch it from heaven; nor content ourselves with a flash and fit of devotion; but keep it alive in our hearts, as the fire upon the altar, which was never to go out. There must be a constancy and a daily practice, such as Daniel's use was, who prayed three times a day with his face towards jerusalem; and David's, who praised God morning and at evening and at noonday: And thus some expound that x jugiter 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Pray always i.e. constantly, every day, without intermission, set aside some of your time for this duty; alluding to the custom of the daily sacrifice. Now there are several sorts of Prayer: As to the place; public in the church, or private, in the family, in the closet. As to time; ordinary, for our ordinary affairs, morning and evening, before and after meals; and extraordinary upon extraordinary occasions, such as are designs, dangers, and deliverances, fasts and feasts, judgements and mercies; particular sins and graces, etc. And accordingly some have to very good purpose and great benefit of the vulgar, put forth Manuals of devotion, fitted for all the business and most occurrences of life. As to the manner; mental only, as y 1 Sam. 1. 13. Hanna prayed in silence; or oral, uttered by the voice, whence 'tis called Oratio. As to the person praying; either conceived, & that either upon premeditation; or with sudden affection, and as they say ex tempore; (and this may, must be allowed any Christian in his privacy,) or set, either by public appointment of the Church, or the civil Magistrate; (who being to order the matters of Religion, may well be styled in this meaning, z Rom. 13. 4. the Minister of God, Diaconus Dei, & Liturgus Dei, i.e. as the Greek word imports, God's common-Prayer-maker; it being the very word, whence Liturgy is derived,) or by direction of Godly men for the use of them, who are unprovided with forms of their own. And lastly as to the subject, or the things prayed for; a 1 Tim. 11. 1. the Apostle hath divided it into four kinds: Petition for good, Deprecation of evil, Thanksgiving for the good obtained, or evil removed, and Intercession in the behalf of others. All which sorts of prayer are either exemplified or included in this most absolute form, which our Saviour himself prescribed, which from him is called The Lord's Prayer. There are not many things, which wear the stamp of this title, and those have a peculiar veneration due to them, as immediately appointed by jesus himself; the Lord's Day, the Lord's Supper, the Lord's Prayer: (The same word, out of which the name which we give God's House is made, b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Kirk or Church.) Christ did not only make it, but appoint it too; for when his disciples came to him with a desire that he would teach them to pray, as john had done his disciples; He bade them use this form. St. Matthew indeed, When you pray, say thus: which yet doth signify not only in this manner, but in these very words. St. Luke more peremptorily delivers the institution, c Luk. 11. 2, when you pray say: so that granting the adversary the advantage that he would catch at from St. Matthew; yet he must acknowledge even from thence, that this prayer is an exact copy, and platform, by which we are to frame and model all our prayers; and St. Luke will make out farther, that it is a form of prayer, to be constantly used by them, who would be taken for Christ's disciples. And no question but as it is the most ancient, and best prayer, which ever was in the Christian Church, so 'twas meant for constant use and rehearsal in the sacred offices of the Church. This assertion proves Liturgy as lawful, as the prevention of blasphemy, schism, and nonsense make it convenient if not necessary: which the opposers of set forms perceiving and fearing lest the spirit (as they term it) should be bound, if Christ's own form should pass free, make bold not only to disuse but to abuse it too, and cry it down; as if his words could offend God, whose very name doth so much prevail with him in prayer. Wherefore they would have Luke be understood according to Matthew's expression: which (by their favour) is not to be granted them; for St. Matthew's way of speaking d Thus saith the Lord, i.e. 〈…〉 is often taken in St. Luke's meaning, but on the contrary, 'twill be hard for them to find an instance of their arguing. Nor will the variation of a word in the middle of it, or the omission of a clause at the end of it, stand them in much stead, as we shall see anon. This excellent form and pattern then of prayer is both for matter, and form, and order so full and complete and comprehensive; so well ordered, and fitly suited, and handsomely expressed; that, were the command for the use of it laid aside, it seems to commend itself to a Christian's daily practice, as a short yet full Liturgy. This Prayer may be divided into three parts; the Preface, the Prayer itself, and 〈◊〉 Conclusion. The Preface is a comp●●tion of him, whom the prayer is addressed to; to wit, God, who is described, partly by a title, which shows his relation to us, and our interest in him, Our Father. partly by the place, wherein he dwells and shows forth his glory, which art in Heaven. The body of the Prayer itself contains in it a complete sum and total of all holy desires, and a perfect breviate of things prayed for, both spiritual and temporal, and hath six or (as some would have it by parting the last into two) seven Petitions: The three former whereof concern God's glory, the three later belong to us and our necessities, both unto this life and that which is to come. So that the glory of God, and the Salvation of man, which are the two pillars, upon which the frame of providence, and work of grace do stand; are mainly here considered, and run in each vein of this Prayer. The sense of all may be briefly reduced into these two 〈◊〉 verses. 1. Name. 2. Kingdom. 3. Will be done. 4. Bread. 5. Debts. 6. Temptation. The conclusion, or indeed peroration, hath in it a Doxology, or excellent form of confession and praise, reflecting upon the three first petitions, and carrying along with it a reason of the whole prayer, thus: Thy Kingdom come, For thine is the Kingdom; Thy will be done, For thine is the power; and Hallowed be thy Name, For thine is the glory. That God's glory is in our prayers (as it ought to be in all our actings) the 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, the first and the last, the beginning from which all things came at first, and the end to which all things tend at last. And the Petitions themselves have a mutual respect, and seem to look to one another after this manner: That we may hollow thy name, and praise thee in the Land of the living, preserve our life by supplying us with food; That thy Kingdom may come into us, and grace may rule in our hearts, blot out our past iniquities, and justify us by forgiving our sins; That we may perform a due obedience to thy will, remove every offence out of the way, and suffer us not to fall into sin, by giving us up to the power of temptation, or leaving us to ourselves. This in general. To come to the Prayer itself; in the compellation, wherein we call God Father, we do not mean only the first person of the blessed Trinity, excluding the other two persons, the Son, and the Spirit, but take in all three the word Father here being not appropriated to one person, as in relation to another, (to wit of the Father to the Son,) but applied to God according to his essence, i.e. to all three Persons (for they all three are one and the selfsame God) in opposition to us, who say the prayer. The Father, Son and Spirit being each of them, one as well as the other, a Father in respect of all created things, and particularly of men, it being usual with the Heathens so to term their Jupiter,— e 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Hom. Father of Angels and of men. FATHER. God is the great Father of the universe, the master of the world, from whom and to whom are all things. He made all things by the word of his power, and of his ●eer goodness preserves all things & wisely order all events, and deals with the whole world no otherwise, than a ●ather doth with his child. He is not only in himself an infinite being, as his name jehovah shows, including in it all the differences of time Past, Present, and Future; f Rev. 1. 4. who was, and is, and is to come. but the immense fountain of beings, whence every thing that is had its originals not that his very essence or substance was or could be communicated to any created thing, as man begets man (a Father the Son) in his own likeness; then every thing would be God, which is the 〈◊〉 blasphemy to say. No; the nature of God is quite of another kind then that of the creatures, and altogether incommunicable; For how can we imagine, that his infinite essence, could have streamed forth itself into such a various and particular existence, clothed itself with those accidents, and submitted itself to those laws of change, which all created things lie under? 'Twas his almighty Word, which produced all things of nothing, light out of darkness, order out of confusion; that was the womb that afforded the fruitful seed, out of which all things grew: g Psal. 148. 5. He spoke, and they were made; and 'twas well observed by the Heathen Critic, h Longin. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. that Moses used expressions suitable to the Majesty of a God, when he writes, God said, let there be light and there was light. ' 'tis true, he hath imprinted upon every creature some character of himself, that we may know by looking on the piece, by the Image and superscription, whose handy work it is. And in this sense we may say, every thing he has done is like him; as we would of an absolute artist, whose rare pieces will at first sight show what hand they came from. Nor did he only make things, and then leave them to themselves, as some unnatural parents expose their children; But takes care of and provides for every thing, looks after them, wears them in his thoughts, in his ●y, supplies their wants, opens his hand and fills them with his goodness, cherishes and maintains them. And having built this goodly frame of heaven and earth doth with his h Deut. 33. 27. everlasting arms (what vain story says of Atlas) support and uphold it, or rather as his Vice-gerents are pictured with a Globe in one hand and a Sceptre in the other, grasps the whole world in his hand; and dandles it in his lap, as a tender hearted mother her playsom child. Can he that implanted so tender an affection in all mothers & dams to their young ones, himself be without large bowels of compassion, full breasts of mercy, and a tender bosom of love? His goodness exceeds all comparison: Though a mother should forget her child, yet ( i Isa. 49, 15. saith he) I will not forget my people. Providence is that great dug, at which every creature hangs, and draws its comfort, by which all things are maintained, whence are issued forth daily allowances and constant provisions dealt out. For he commands k Ps. 133. blessing and l Ps. 44. 4. deliverance. m Ps. 2●. Thou art my shepherd (saith the Psalmist) and I shall want nothing. The Spirit of God (saith the sacred Historian;) moved upon the face of the deep, that Chaos and first matter, out of which the several kinds of creatures were afterwards to be particularly produced. A word n 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. proper to birds that sit upon their eggs & brood them; He fluttered and sat upon it, and kept it in a lively warmth, and quickened that rude lump, that he might out of that great confused ball, wherein the seeds of things lay jumbled, (which therefore an o vid. Gr●t. d● ver. Rol. ancient Philosopher called Nature's Egg) hatch a well ordered world. And since God hath compared himself in p Deut. ●2. 11▪ 12. one place to a broody eagle; & Christ in q Matt. 23. 37. another himself to a hen; the one teaching her young ones to fly and shift for themselves by carrying them on her back; the other clucking her chickens, with great pains scraping up their subsistence, cherishing them under her wings, and with all her might protecting them from rapine; We may from these similitudes learn, what a dear love and careful fear God hath for all his, lest they come to hurt. God then may very well be styled a Father in this sense too, that he hath not only as a Father given being to all things, but as a Father of a family provides for all about him, furnishing them with convenient accommodations and seasonable supplies. Nor is this all yet; but he order all things, disposes chance, & overrules events to his own ends, doing r Psal. 135. 6. whatsoever he pleaseth both in heaven and earth; even as Father's order the affairs of their family, or as magistrates (who are the Fathers of their country) manage the civil state, making laws and putting them in execution, rewarding the obedient & punishing the disobedient. Indeed all government is naturally bottomed upon this relation, and grounded in a paternal authority; the Father at first exercising all power even to life and death over those of his own family: nor is a city or commonwealth any other than a more numerous family, subject to the same ruler and governed by the same laws. God then it is that gives order for every thing▪ by whom and when and how it should be done. s Matt. 10. 29. Not a sparrow falls to the ground without his leave. The whole series of second causes is but that golden chain the Poets fancied, whose uppermost link is fastened to Jove's chair. He is the Lord of Hosts; such as are the stars in their courses, thunder, lightning, hail, snow, rain, wind and storm, fulfilling his word; nay, frogs and lice, when he hath service for them, will muster into armies and the locusts gather themselves into bands▪ He knows best what will make for our good, and his own glory, and by his wise contrivance carries things in that nature, that they shall all work together for those ends. He is in the world as a King in his Kingdom: Where his word is there is power, and who shall say to him what dost thou? Angels are his attendants and menials, the other creatures his utensils; But men, though they are termed vessels too in his great house, yet they are privileged with a nearer relation to him; They are his children, for he is our Father. OUR. This word denotes a propriety and closer interest, seeing he is not our Father alone in that general sense, in that t Psal. 100 3. he made us & not we our selves; as he is styled v job 3●. 2●. the Father of rain, and u Lam. 1. 17. the Father of lights; nor for the greater likeness we have to him more than our fellow creatures, which is common to us with the Angels, who are therefore called w job 18. 7. the Sons of God; But by redemption also, having purchased us by the Blood of his Son, and made us a peculiar people to himself, and having begotten us anew by the word and spirit, and adopted us by grace, that we who are by nature children of wrath might be made the children of God; and to which of the Angels ever said he thus, my Son? Oh! what a condescension of love, that God should suffer himself to be styled our Father, who have corruption for our mother? that Christ should become our brother, whose sisters are the worms? For x Rom. 8. 17. if we be sons, then are we heirs, and if heirs than coheirs with Christ: Oh infinite love, and kindness unspeakable! how dearly obliging an expression? that our Saviour, who is the only Son of God begotten of his substance should not permit, but command us to call God our Father too? y joh. 29. 17. my Father and your Father, says he. Now as Father is a word of authority, and signifies love and care bespeaking from us a reciprocal love, a filial reverence and obedience: so Our is a note of indearment, which should teach us charity, which indeed the whole prayer breathes in all the parts of it, Give us, Forgive us, and Deliver us, bringing in all mankind to partake the benefit of our prayers. And seeing it hath pleased God to own us for children, and Christ to make us partners of his relation to become brethren, it would very ill beseem the best of saints or greatest of men to disdain any of their fellow-brethrens, he they never so miserable, never so wicked: Since, were there not a community of the same nature, the sense of humanity, the ties of reason and religion, and the laws of nations to bring us to some kind of unity, and mutual affection; God's love to us is an invincible argument, why we should love one another. WHICH ART. And there is none beside thee; For z Psal. 73. 25. whom have I in heaven but thee? and there is none upon earth, that I desire in comparison of thee. Indeed the original doth not so express it, making use of the article alone, and leaving the verb to be understood; which as 'tis elliptical, so 'tis an emphatical kind of speaking; a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. He or The in Heaven, which should note a superlative excellence above all others, to whom the title of Father can belong; the Lord God, the King of glory, immortal, infinite, eternal, the greatest, the best; in a word, the Heavenly Father. And this distinguishes him from the fathers of our flesh, our earthly parents, who are weak men dwelling in houses of clay, of a limited life & love, whose breath is in their nostrils, and when they return to the dust, all their thoughts perish: who cannot do for us as they would, and sometimes will not do us that little good they can; short-handed and narrow-hearted; who if they supply our outward and bodily wants, give us a handsome education; and provide us a fashionable way of life, they do as much as is expected, more than can be requited; but cannot bestow grace on us, nor bless us with spiritual blessings in heavenly places. And yet to these parents we are required, (next to God) to pay our service and thanks to the utmost, and show all possible honour: Nor did our Saviour (who b Mar. 7. 10, 11. finds fault with the Pharisaical interpretation of that precept, and the sorry evasion of the Corban) mean to slacken that natural bond of affection and duty, which is betwixt parents and their children, when he bids us c Matth. 23. 9 call no man Father upon earth. But he speaks that comparatively to heighten our reverences & duties to our heavenly Father; that in comparison of him we should take no notice of our earthly relations, nor think them worthy of our least respect, as himself says elsewhere, d Luk. 14. 26. He that hateth not father and mother, etc. that is, doth not infinitely less love them then he doth me, my ways, and my concernments, he cannot be my disciple. Wherefore how great an awe ought we to bring along with us before such a glorious presence? what distance should we stand at? what reverence should we bear to his name, since he is in Heaven and we on earth? what obedience should we have for his word, with what humility should we come and fall down at his feet, & kneel before the Lord our Maker? How should every one with the prodigal cry out, e Luk 15. 2●▪ Father I have sinned against Heaven and before thee, and am no more worthy to be called thy son. IN HEAVEN. God is every where, omnipresent, fills all places, Both lands and tracts of sea, & heaven high. f Psal. 139, ●. Whither shall I flee from thy presence? If I ascend up into Heaven, thou art there: if I make my bed in hell, behold thou art there. But he is said in a peculiar manner to be in heaven; there he dwells in unapprochable light, there he displays his glory, and scatters his goodness out of his treasures, his sun and his rain, thunder and lightning, hail & storm fulfilling his word. There are the dreadful remarks of his presence, and the brightest appearances of his Majesty: which made the very heathens place their imaginary deities in heaven; that though they mistook in the object of their worship, yet they hit right in the place where they were to seek God; For heaven is his dwelling place, g Psal. 115. 16. but the earth hath he given to the children of men. The word is in the Heavens, not in these lower regions of the sky, where the winds bluster, and the clouds thicken, where the sun and moon and stars observing their courses carry light about the world: But in the third heaven, in the h Psal. 68 33. Heaven of Heavens, whence he is called i Psal. 47. 2. Elion the Highest. Poor unbiased Pagans dazzled with the glories of these luminaries, which shine in the firmament, and are but the servants of nature, tapers which God has hung up in the vault and cover of the world, directed their devotions no farther, and so came short of the glory of God who dwelleth on high, far above the very light of nature, and the laws of change; whereas things here below are subject to continual vicissitudes, rolled about with the wheel of chance, always flowing or ebbing, the world itself being but k Rev. 15. 2. a sea of glass, there's a perpetuity of good, and a constant happiness, which knows neither change nor end. Besides it became the infinity of God, which cannot be bounded or cooped up with any term of locality, to choose heaven for his mansion, whose vast circumference and compass is of that wide extent, that in the Natural Philosopher's opinion the whole globe of earth is but as a point to it, and this clod in which men make such a quarter and bustle in pursuit of their interest is a sorry ant-hillock in respect of that stately arch, and spangled roof. nay the nations are as the Prophet hath it l Isa. 40. 15. as the small dust of the balance, and a drop of a bucket. Lastly the incorruptible God, thought fit to set his seat on high, far above the sphere of corruption, to which all sublunary things are liable, and advance himself to the greatest distance from earth, the grounds and dregs of nature, the bottom of the world, the sediment and mother of things. There he dwells in liquid and clear regions of glory and bliss, the invisible God, whose face no man can see and live, attended by millions of Angels and blessed Saints departed this life; yet is pleased to look down from on high on the children of men and have his ears open to their prayers when they call upon him. Nor doth he only dwell in heaven, and (as with reverence I may say) keep house there with his courtiers and domestics about him, but he sits there too, as a judge: m Psal. 103. 19 The Lord hath prepared his Throne in the Heavens. Heaven is his throne and earth is his foot stool. And let things run never so much at random here on earth, there is one in heaven to render to every one according to his works, whose wrath as 'tis unsufferable, so his power is irresistible, and his knowledge infallible. He has girt the whole round of nature, that there is no escaping him; the whole world is his close prisoner, and let wicked men use all their shifts; though the mountains should fall upon them, and the hills cover them, yet God's hand shall find out his enemies, and bring them to punishment. For He is there as a spy too, upon us, he beholdeth us afar of and observes our carriage, and takes notice of all our doings, not an idle word escapes him, nor is there a thought in the heart which he knows not long before. His piercing eyes walk too and fro through the earth, and his eyelids try the children of men. And this argument our Saviour uses where he persuades to secret good, n Matth. 7. 6. and (says he) thy Father which seeth in secret shall reward thee openly. What care then should we have to our ways, to our words, who are always in sight, in hearing of our heavenly Father? with what reverence should we approach to his throne? in what awe should we stand of his power? How should we be struck flat to the ground, like Paul at his conversion, amazed and astonished with the considerations of a heavenly Majesty? How should our hearts be set on fire with heavenly flames, and the desire of heavenly things? How should we slight and trample upon earth and all earthly concernments in comparison of Heaven, where our Father hath many mansions of glory, and at whose right hand are pleasures for evermore? How should our appetites be flatted to the relish of all sensual contents, when we think of those good things which the Father of mercies, and the God of all consolation hath laid up for us in heaven? What a mean esteem should we have for, all the glittering vanities, the paltry preferments, deceivable riches, the guilded hopes, and pleasures (as false as base) of this lower world; when we think of the glories and the joys above? How should these ravish our souls, and make them impatient, till they have o Phil. 1. 3. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 solvere è port●●. weighed anchor, and be with Christ? How highly should we prise our spiritual birthright, and heavenly inheritance? How should we now endeavour to have our conversation already in heaven? How should we fear the displeasure of so great, so good a Father, more than hell? How careful should we be of disparaging our high birth, and heavenly calling, by any indecency or foul miscarriage? How should we strive to be like our Father which is in heaven, holy as he is holy, merciful as he is merciful, perfect as he is perfect? that we may be known by our conversation to be the children of God, children of the highest, the children of light, to whon belongs the Kingdom of Heaven. For 'tis God's presence and favour makes heaven: Heaven would not be heaven unless he were there. Where ever grace is, there's heaven; for God dwells there, entertaining himself in an humble heart as much in the highest heavens. To make short, how should we admire him, worship him, fear him and love him, and joy in him with a holy ecstasy of affections, and heavenly reptures of devotion, that have leave to use these words, Our Father which art in Heaven? This appellation with the other title of Father assures, and makes up our confidence complete. For being our Father he will do us all the good he can, and being in Heaven he can do what he will; so that the goodness of a Father, and the power of heaven stand engaged for us, as the two pillars of our hope; and two sureties, that all our petitions following will be granted and made good unto us. Amongst which, as 'twas fit, those which belong to his own glory have the first place; and God having made all things for himself cannot be unmindful of providing for that. But he loves to be asked to do even what he means of himself to do, that man's will may be brought into a compliance with God's, and the execution of decrees become the return of prayers. Thus he delights to oblige where he can force, and that which he hath with an unchangeable purpose from all eternity resolved with himself, makes it the product of his creatures will; as if he had more kindness for the desires of men then for his own resolves, and would not perform his own eternal decrees, unless man first consent, and make it his request. And indeed it is man's concernment that is driven throughout the prayer; for 'tis not for God's sake that we pray, but for our own: What advantage gets God by our prayers, unless giving be getting? His name is holy, his Kingdom is everlasting, and his will irresistible, whether we pray or no. But we pray that all this may be ordered for our good, and we are as much concerned in this as in our daily bread; God so ordering all the administrations of his providence and grace, that his glory and man's salvation go hand in hand, and that all things may work together as for his glory, so for our good, the good of those that love and fear his name. HALLOWED BE THY NAME. The name is the first thing we inquire after about any thing we desire to know; as Moses, when he talked with God at his first appearance to him, told him the Israelites would ask him, who sent him, and p Exod 3. 13, what was his name. There hath always been taken great care for the imposition of names, that they might be suitable and proper to the nature of things. For things are distinguished and known from one another by their names. Wherefore God himself named the greater pieces of his work, which being of vast unruly bulk, were to be under his own immediate government, as Heaven and Earth and the Sea; and 'tis said q Psal. 147. 4. he calls the stars all by their names, etc. But those creatures which he meant to put under man's feet, he brought to him to name. The like care hath been constantly taken by parents and others in providing fit names for their children, that families and persons may be sufficiently distinguished; for which purpose the day, on which the child was circumcised, amongst the jews, which was the eighth day from his birth, and about the same time among the heathens, but amongst us Christians at the baptism, this solemnity of naming the child is performed; a thing of such concernment, that it hath been delivered sometimes by the message of Angels, other while by miracle. And that was a signal token in the r Isa. 45. 1, 3. prophecy, wherein he calls his anointed Cyrus by name four hundred years before he was in being. 'Tis a nice consideration, but there may be something in it, and of more than ordinary consequence, that God should take such care about names, that he should think fit to give and change them either in favour or displeasure; as in the instance of Abraham, Conjah, Peter, etc. and that he is said to write the names of his elect in the book of life, and to give them a new name; and to blot out the names of the wicked, and to threaten that their names, i.e. their memory shall perish. Let them take heed that forbear to christian their children, and give them names, lest they design their children's ruin; God finding no names they have in the church-roll, to copy into his book. f Gen. 27. 36. Is not he rightly named jacob; saith Esau, for he hath supplanted me this twice? And Nabal was as very a churl as his name gave him for; and very many scripture-names are thus signicant. And Melchizedeck (whose true name if 'twere Shem, was Name according to the signification of the Hebrew word) denotes, t Heb. 7. 2. as the Apostle explains it, the character of the person, King of righteousness, who was also King of Salem, that is, King of peace. God out of a familiar love to mankind is pleased to dress himself as 'twere, and set forth his nature by those ways which are usual amongst men, and therefore v jer. 32. 20. hath made himself a name. Now the name of God is any thing, by which God hath made himself known, and hath in the Scripture-language several acceptions; For sometimes the name is taken for the person himself whose name it is, as in reckoning u Act. ●. 15. so many names. And so we say of God, to call upon the name of the Lord, i.e. to call upon the Lord: and to give thanks unto the name of the Lord, etc. x Ps. 115. 1. Not unto us, but to thy name give the glory, i.e. to thyself; for so the opposition stands not to us, but to thyself. Sometimes it is taken for fame and renown and glory, which accompanies a good name and makes it like good ointment; the Giants of old were y Gen. 6. 4▪ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 men of name, to wit, famous renowned men much talked of: z Mar. 6. 14. with E●h. 4. 14. Christ's name after he had wrought some miracles was spread abroad throughout the country, i.e. he grew famous. We will make mention of thy name (saith the Psalmist often,) and will speak well of thy name, and sing praises to thy name, i.e. set forth thy praise in verse, and contribute the skill of my tongue and harp, (which are a Ps. 16. 9 & 57 8. my glory) in the celebration of the glory. Then 'tis taken for those abilities & virtues, which commend a man to fame, and raise an admiration and esteem of him; as power, wisdom, goodness, mercy, etc. And such are the glorious attributes of God, the excellencies and perfections of his nature; as b Ps. 8. 1. How excellent is thy name in all the earth, says David, when he meditates upon the works of creation, wherein those attributes of his do most conspicuously shine forth, to the amazement of any serious beholder. And lastly it comprehends all the effects & achievements of the divine attributes, whether produced by common providence in the world; such as are, his works, daily accidents, extraordinary events; or by special grace, such as are, his word and ordinances, the Sacraments, the Gospel, his Ministers, his Sabbaths, his Temple, his inheritance, persons, places, times and things dedicated to his service; and whatsoever wears upon it a stamp of holiness to the Lord. Thus, c Psal. 44. 5▪ in thy name will we tread down our enemies, i.e. by thy assistance and help, and by the conduct of thy providence so ordering it, defeating the counsels, and breaking the strength of our adversaries. d Matt. 7. 22. In thy name we have prophesied and cast out devils, etc. by virtue of thy commission, by thy command and appointment, and the warrant of thy word; e Matt. 2●. 19 Baptising them in the name of the Father, etc. to wit, into the profession of the Gospel, into the worship and service of God, faith in his promises, and obedience to his commands. Nor is the principal and usual signification to be laid aside, God having many such names given him in Scripture; both proper, as jehovah, jah, Elohim, Adonai, Shaddai; and appellative, even a full Alphabet of names as the Syric Grammarians reckon them. And so too, f Psal. 111. 9 Holy and reverend is his name. Our petitions here begin in God's name, a form so well liked, that it came to be taken up even up even in the civil affairs of life, wills, contracts, etc. and made use of at last as a stale to countenance the worst designs of cheat, prostituted to base self-ends, even to the infamy of a Proverb. And surely if we facing our prayers with it, make it only a vizard to our own corrupt desires, we do it a fowl reproach, and profane it, when we pray it may be sanctified. To Sanctify hath also a doubtful meaning according to the thing it is applied to. The Philosopher has in a moral respect ranked things into three forms; For there are some things absolutely and in their own nature good; others as naturally bad; and a third sort of indifferent things, which in their own nature are neither good nor bad, but according as they are used. His distinction may find room here and accordingly admit of a threefold Sanctification; That which is in itself holy is sanctified, when 'tis acknowledged and reverenced as holy; And thus g Isa. 8. 13. and 29. 23. we are bid to Sanctify the Lord of Hosts himself, the holy One. That which is by nature evil and corrupt is sanctified by being made holy, and having that nature renewed according to righteousness; And thus h Leu. 20. 8. God sanctifies us by his spirit, creating us to good works in Christ jesus; and he bids us also i Vers. 7. Sanctify ourselves by a diligent attendance on the holy ordinances and holiness of life and conversation. That which is of a middle and indifferent nature, is sanctified when we set it apart from common service and apply it to holy uses. So our meat is k 1 Tim. 4. 5. sanctified by the word and Prayer, so the Priest with his vests, the Temple with its utensils, the Sabbath, etc. become sacred and inviolable; And who offers a violence to any thing that thus belongs to God's peculium is profane and sacrilegious. Our request then in this petition is, That all things may be done to the glory of God, that he would order his own counsels, and all the dispensations of his providence and his grace to the utmost advantages of his own praise; that he would sanctify us that we might sanctify him in our hearts; that we may fear before him, that is dreadful in holiness; that we may entertain reverend thoughts of him, admire him in his infinite perfections, be astonished at his unsearchable glory, study his praises, meditate on his goodness, delight ourselves in him, and speak well of his name, and set forth his noble acts; that we may take notice of him in his out-going, observe his providences, mark his particular supplies and restraints, regard his mercies with thankfulness, and mend under his judgements; that we may wait on him in his sanctuary in the use of his ordinances, go to his house in his fear, praise his name l Psal. 42. 4. in the assembly among those that keep holy days, attend to his word, keep his Sabbaths, honour his Ministers, and give due respect to every thing that belongs to him; and that we use not any of his names or titles, but upon weighty occasions, and with great reverence. And lastly that our whole life be so holy and blameless, that we may not give occasion for God's name or his ways to be evil spoken of, but rather that m Matt. 5. 16. our light may so shine before men, that they seeing our good works may glorify our Father, which is in Heaven. And this being done will promote & set forward the interests of his Kingdom, and so speed the second petition too. THY KINGDOM COME. God is n Rev. 17. 14. the Lord of Lords, and the King of Kings, the great Sovereign of the world, who does whatsoever he pleases, and neon saith unto him what dost thou? o Rom. 9 19 who hath resisted his will, or p Isa 40. 13. given him counsel? For that the word signifies also in the q 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 regnavit, Ch. consul. vit. Chaldee dialect, those two things being necessary to complete a Monarch's right, and make him absolute, to do what he doth by a clear and full authority and power of his own, and by his own counsel and pleasure to act and determine that power. He is the great Basis and support of all societies and governments in the world; For r Rom. 13. 1. the powers that are, are ordained of God; s Prov. 8. 15. By me King's reign, and for him too, being his Vice-gerents t Rom. 13. 4, 5. and sword-bearers, to be a terror to evil-doers and a praise to the good. And as he hath corwned all mankind with honour and dignity, giving them dominion over their fellow-creatures; so he hath put that Majesty upon rulers, whom he hath appointed to govern their fellow-men (who else without laws and order would be little better than beasts,) that they may be looked upon, and observed with that reverence, as if they were earthly Gods. v Psal. 82. 6. 7. I have said ye are Gods, but ye shall die like men. They are God's anointed ones; and honoured of him, accountable only to him, required therefore to do their homage, and u Psal. 11 12. kiss the Son lest he be angry. And as they must like all other men die, so they must also appear before the judgement-seat of God. w Regum timendorum in proprios greges, Reges in ipsos imperium est jovis. Hor. Od. l. 3. Kings to their subjects dreadful stand O'er Kings themselves is God's command. He hath all the royalties that belong to an Imperial Crown, a righteous Sceptre, righteous laws, loyal subjects, glorious privileges, blessed rewards for the obedient, and great punishments for the disobedient. Not aught Kings of the earth to be impatient at mutinous and rebellious spirits, when God himself wants not those who x Psal. 139. 21. rise up against him; and which may set them a copy of princely clemency to write their acts of grace after, y Psal. 78. 18. giveth gifts to the rebellious, leaving some of them as monuments of his mercy, though too others he make trophies of his justice. I might note that sure Kingship is the best form and model of government, since God himself rules under that title; that the Regicide is a kind of Deicide; and when subjects dare mate their sovereign, and contrive a Commonwealth to justle out the Kingdom, they do but challenge divine vengeance for that, which perhaps their injured princes forces cannot chastise, and call upon themselves Lucifer's fate, who z jude, v. 6. left his first estate by clambering higher, whose pride preferred him to the principality in Hell, where he gnashes his teeth, and curses God; who questionless hath been that Angel of light, that hath cloaked sedition with the name of Godliness, and taught the late teachers to a Vers. 8. despise dominion, and speak evil of dignities, and blaspheme the name of Kings. And all nature hath by instinct followed divine example, gathering itself as much as may be into oneness; making every sort of creature almost submit to monarchical rule, and preaching as it were the Apostle's lesson, b jam 3. Be not many masters. But the sad experience of these nations in the time of tyranny, and the wonderful providence of God in the restitution, hath sufficiently convinced all honest English of this truth, that That government is best, which is likest God's; to wit a Monarchy, a Kingdom. Now God hath a twofold Kingdom, one universal at large, all the world over, the other particular and special, his Church; For he is c jer. 10. 7, 7. King of the nations and d Rev. 15. 3. King of the Saints. or we may say, a threefold Kingdom in respect of the different administration of this later, according to the different condition of the church militant here on earth, or triumphant in heaven, to wit, a temporal, spiritual, and eternal Kingdom; or the Kingdom of his power, the Kingdom of grace, and the Kingdom of glory. By his power, he governs the whole fabric of the world, disposes of all things, appoints seasons, sets bounds to human power, overrules their purposes, stills the raging of the Sea, and the madness of the people, raises up, casts down, kills and makes alive, strikes the earth with his thunder, and darts forth his lightnings; the winds obey him, & blow only where he lists. e Psal. 119. 91. All things are his servants, and f Psal. 135 6. he doth what he pleaseth both in heaven and in earth. By his grace he governs his Church, sets up his throne in the hearts of his people, appoints officers, gathers the elect, and rules them by his word and spirit, conquers sin and death, kills our corruptions, subdues our lusts, and treads Satan under our feet, and breaks the powers of hell, that the gates thereof shall not prevail against the church, guides the faithful ones in his ways, tries their patience, exercises their faith, teaches them his laws, that they may observe his statutes and ordinances, defends the Saints, and is g Psal. 84. 11. a sun and shield to direct and protect them, that neither the Devil nor wicked men can do them any hurt; rewards those that do or suffer any thing for his sake, punishes offenders, and pursues the impenitent, and such as obstinately stand out his calls and tenders of grace, and go on presumptuously in their evil way, with the fury of his indignation, afflicting them with bodily plagues, temporal calamities, and spiritual judgements, as blindness of mind, hardness of heart, etc. giving them up to their own shameful lusts, and a reprobate mind, & into the power of the devil, and either passing final sentence upon them in this life, or reserving them till the great Assizes of the last judgement. In the Kingdom of glory (as he himself is called h Psal. 24. 10. the King of glory,) he sits on his Throne encompassed with millions of Angels, and blessed Saints, who fall down before him, and sing praises i Rev. 4. 9, 10. to him that sits upon the Throne, and to the Lamb. This is to have its beginning when the other two end, not to be completed till the last day, when the Angels gather the elect from the four corners of the earth, whom God shall reward with everlasting bliss; when he shall send the ungodly to Hell, k Mar. 9 44. where the worm never dyeth, and the fire never goes out. Then those who were sufferers shall be conquerors, and wear a never-fading crown. l 11. Tim. 4. 8. I have fought a good fight (saith St. Paul) and henceforth there is laid up for me a crown of righteousness. All the Saints then shall be Kings, there shall be the glorious orders of pure Virgins that defiled not themselves, of blessed Confessors that were not ashamed of their profession, of holy Martyrs who loved not their souls to death, of Prophets the Harbingers of Christ, and Apostles the heralds of the Gospel, and all the choir of Heaven singing Hallelujahs. This is that Kingdom of Christ which he said was m joh. 18. 32. not of this world, for which he despised the shame, & with which his servants that have a taste of the heavenly gift, and are afforded the earnest of their meditations, (a sight of the heavenly Canaan, and glorified transfiguration; as from Pisgah, and on mount Tabor) are so ravished, and deeply affected, that they must needs cry, n Rev. 22. 20▪ come Lord jesus come quickly; Thy Kingdom come. COME. i.e. appear and show itself, may its interest be promoted, may it get ground and enlarge itself, may it be seen that o Psal. 69. 1. the Lord is King, let the people be never so unquiet; may it come into our hearts and rule there, and beat down every proud imagination, that lifts itself up against God; may Christ hasten his coming & illustrious presence, which the jews Liturgy is full of even to this day, the coming of Messias. Now there is a twofold advent or coming of Christ mentioned in Scripture; The one was when he came in the flesh, in the form of a servant to die for us, that he might reign upon the tree as some readings have it in the Psalms: The other will be, when he shall come in the clouds with power and glory, attended with Angels to judge the world, at that great and dreadful day, when the trumpet shall summon all to appear before the tribunal. And when that's done he shall deliver up the Kingdom to his Father; and the time of this his coming and the end of the world, he hath left here to be the subject of our prayers, and not of our inquiries, to exercise devotion not curiosity: the uncertainty of the time being an argument to quicken our diligence in preparing for it, that we may watch and pray; he having told us aforehand, that he will steal upon us, p 2 Pet. 3. 10. as a thief in the night. But what need we trouble ourselves about the age of the world, when our own time is so uncertain, that we cannot call the next hour our own, and know not how soon the arrest of death may hurry us away to judgement? He that dies now in the Lord q Rev. 14. 13. rests from his labour, & his good works follow him; and if we cannot properly say that the Kingdom of God is come to him, we may safely say he is gone to it. At the end of the world than is Christ's great coming, and the general judgement: but at every single death there is a particular doom passed, when the soul immediately after its delivery out of the body is dispatched either into the regions of life, or lodged in the chambers of death, so that in this sense Christ may be said to come too. And there is a gracious visit, when he comes, and r Rev. 3. 20. knocks at the heart, and calls to his beloved by his word; When he comes into us, to a feast and banquet of love furnished with the consolations of the spirit. The sum of this request is, that God would declare his power even to the heathen that know not his name, and make discoveries of his Majesty by his outward administrations, not leaving himself without witness, but convince profane spirits that there is a God that rules in the world; that he would manage the affairs of the world for his people's good, and for the advancement of the Kingdom of his Son; that he would bless the civil societies of men; that he would fill Sovereigns with wisdom to go in and out before the people, and people with loyalty to their rulers, and with love to one another; That he would establish the state, wherein we live, in peace and order, preserving us on one hand from the tyranny and oppression of superiors, and on the other hand from rebellion and conspiracy of inferiors; That he would save the King, whom he hath set (under himself) our supreme Head and Governor, from all treasons and treacherous designs; that he would subdue the people under him, cloth his enemies with shame, and upon himself let his crown flourish; that he would give the King his judgements, and make our Magistrates men of courage, fearing God and hating covetousness; That he would preserve us from all dreadful calamities, the plague, pestilence and famine; from wars, fires, inundations, from murder and sudden death; That he would take a special care of his Church and his chosen ones; that he would send labourers into his vineyard; that he would endue his Ministers with righteousness; that he would illuminate all Bishops and Pastors with true knowledge and understanding of his word, that both by their preaching and living, they may set it forth and show it accordingly. That he would enlarge the tents of Japhet, remember his ancient people the jews, gather in the remnant of the gentiles, send forth his Gospel into the dark corners of the earth, and publish the glad tidings of salvation unto all mankind; that he would fill up the number of his elect, and hasten the glorious appearance of Christ; That he would confound the devices of all that have evil will to Zion, and turn the hearts of heretics, schismatics, and bloody tyrants; That he would assist those that suffer for the testimony of a good conscience with strength from above, and send them the comforter; That he would destroy the man of sin, with the breath of his mouth; That he would s Phil. 4. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 garrison our hearts with his grace; that he would teach us his laws, that we may walk in his statutes, and keep his commands; That he would mortify the desires and lusts of the flesh, subdue us to himself, and make us a willing people in the day of his power; That he would open our hearts for the receiving of his word, and rule in them by his spirit; That his Kingdom may first enter into us, that we may enter into it. Lastly that we may have our feet shod with the preparation of the Gospel, & live in a constant expectation of our great change, that when our Lord comes he may find us doing his will on earth as it is in Heaven: And t Matt. 24 16. blessed is he, whom his Lord when he comes shall find so doing. THY WILL BE DONE. The nature of God is not made up of a body and soul, nor hath he bodily parts, as eyes, hands, feet, etc. or faculties of mind, as understanding, memory, affections; and 'tis no less improper to say of God, that he knows or wills any thing, as that he walks, sees, etc. which are metaphorical expressions taken from men, God being pleased in holy writ to condescend to our capacity, and speak of himself after the manner of men: God is all understanding, all will; nor is there any thing in God which is not infinite, i.e. himself. His will then is not a thing really distinct from his understanding or indeed from his essence, neither is it a blind power as it is in us, that needs the guidance of reason and the light of another faculty to be conveyed into it, to represent the object, and advise it to choose the good, and eschew the evil; but is of itself most free, most wise, most good. Itself is a law and rule to itself, determins itself, and is the measure and standard of all goodness, righteousness and holiness. v Psal. 145. 17. The Lord is righteous in all his ways and holy in all his works; And his pracepts are u Psal. 19 12. more to be desired then gold, yea then fine gold, sweeter than honey & the hony-comb. Now there is a twofold will of God; that of his decrees, and that of his commands. Nor do these two cross and oppose the one the other, as if God decreed one thing should be, and commanded the contrary: but they keep a sweet harmony and mutual correspondence. God's word and his providence may seem sometimes to clash and justle one another, yet they do keep the same road of righteousness, nor does God ever contradict himself, or speak one thing and mean another. w Rom. 3. 4. Let God be true and every man a liar ' that makes such interpretations of the will of God, as that his good pleasure or everlasting purposes should thwart the manifestations of his will, which he hath made in his word. For instance; God saith that x Ez●k. 1●. 23. he would not the death of a sinner, but rather that he should repent and live; And his Apostle saith that y 1. Tim. 2. 4. he would have all men be saved, and come to the knowledge of the truth. He than that shall teach that God hath absolutely predestined any sinner to damnation, and by irreversible decrees concluded him under an impossibility of repentance, lays an imputation upon God's veracity, and makes him if not a liar, yet (which is the worse of the two) a dissembler, to say he desires their life, when he hath by an irrevocable decree prejudged them to unavoidable death, and with all arguments of love to invite them to come to heaven, when he hath long before they were born shut the gates against them. By his decrees he hath from the beginning set down with himself what shall be in time, foresees and order all events to his own end; insomuch that one tittle of his word shall not pass away, till he have accomplished his full will, and brought about his own purposes. Poor weak men want strength and policy to perfect designs, and many times we are cut of in the midway by an untimely death; But God's counsels are laid deep, and he is of an infinite power, and lives to do what he doth to the uttermost. Nor yet does he act so absolutely as to take from second causes their freedom of acting or impose a necessity upon man's will to force it this way or that. Far be it from any sober heart to think, that God can in any sense be the author of sin: Should this doctrine obtain in any man's mind, that all his actions are from all eternity predetermined by God, so that he must needs do what he doth, and cannot possibly do otherwise; I should desire that it may only be considered, what direful consequences will naturally ensue from such a persuasion, when 'tis in good earnest owned and lived after, and whether all the villainy and mischief in the world will not find hence a ready justification. Not to say how vain and useless all reason, counsels, debates, exhortations and reproofs, all that by which we are men or Christians, the use of ministry and ordinances, and all the arguments for a virtuous and a godly life, would prove with one that were obstinately possessed with this opinion, and were resolved to live according to it. But 'tis safer for us to consult God's precepts, then tamper overboldly with his decrees; and to study his will in his commands, with humility adoring the wisdom and righteousness of his unsearchable counsels. These he hath reserved to himself; and locked up from us, as the Arcana imperii: The other he hath plainly made known unto us, and proclaimed them in his word, and we hear the sound of them in our ears; O that they might also sink into our hearts to do them! By these we shall at last be tried, when every one shall receive according to his works: nor will the decrees of God prejudice that soul which hath duly observed his commands, or secure those who wilfully break them. Scripture is the plain rule which we are to walk by; the book of decrees is that sealed book, which none but the Lamb is worthy to open. We ought to study our duty more than destiny. z Matt. 22. 37, 39 Thou shalt love the Lord with all thy heart, and thy neighbour as thyself, are flat commands that require absolute obedience: But the promises and threatenings of God are under condition, and God will make righteous judgement and be found no respecter of persons, when a Matt 7. 29. Not every one that saith Lord, Lord, shall enter into the Kingdom of Heaven; but he that doth the will of our Father which is in Heaven. BE DON. God's decrees are done upon us; his commands are to be done by us: those require our submission, these our performance. And indeed our whole duty is made up of a passive and active obedience, whereby we willingly bear what evils God is pleased to send, and as readily do what good he bids us. But why do we pray that God's will may be done, since his decrees will come to pass though we pray not, and his commands 'tis our part to perform? The reason is for the first to show our compliance with God's will; for the second to desire God's assistance, since without the aids of his grace we are not able to do any thing as we ought. ON EARTH AS IT IS IN HEAVEN. That men here below may as willingly submit to his good pleasure, and pay as cheerful and constant obedience to his commands, as the Saints and Angels above do, who always stand in his presence in a readiness to serve him, who never quarrel at any of his appointments, or grudge at any pains they put themselves to, praising him continually, falling down before him, and ascribing power, and dominion, and glory to him that sitteth on the throne, and to the Lamb: All the business they have to do there, and to spend their time at, is the singing of Hallelujahs, and delighting themselves in seeing the face of God, and meditating on his goodness; They have no other employment but the contemplation, and enjoyment of the chiefest good, and count it their happion to be taken up always with these thoughts. oh! what a heavenly life should we lead here on earth, if we could but thus throw all our desires at God's feet, contenting ourselves with his disposals, not trouble ourselves with the cares of this life; but count it our meat and drink to do his will, to obey him, and trust in him though he should kill us, to do and suffer any thing for his sake, and think it our honour that we are thought worthy; to breath after heaven, mind heavenly things, and whilst we are in this valley of the shadow of death prepare ourselves for eternity, by doing that here in this life, which will be the whole employment of the next. To gather up the sum of the whole petition, 'tis this; That God would give us patient and cheerful spirits so far, that we may resign up ourselves and our interests wholly into his hand, and submit to his good pleasure, possess our souls with patience, and count that condition best, which God out of his infinite wisdom and tender care thinks fittest for us; as being well assured, that he doth all for the best, that he loves us better than we ourselves do; That we should thankful acknowledge his goodness in his preservations of us, and provisions for us; And if at any time he chastise us with wants and distresses, and exercise us with afflictions, to entertain them as messages of his love, and tokens of his kindness, not to murmur or repine under the cross, & think we are hardly dealt with; but to account it great joy, and take up the yoke, and bear the burden quietly, and cast it upon the Lord who will bring it to pass; That we may not boldly pry into his decrees, nor presume upon a rash confidence, or despair in distrust of his love; but adhere to the plain rule of his word, and busy ourselves in doing his will; That we would tread carefully in the path of duty and mind the business of our general and particular calling, and trust God with the success in the use of all lawful means; That we may not be discontented, peevish and froward, when our humours and interests are crossed, and when his providence answers not our desires; but bless God, when he takes away as well as when he gives, and give him the glory whatever befalls us: That we may resign all to his blessed will, and rest fully satisfied with his determinations, that in all cases we may say with our Saviour, b I 〈◊〉 ●2. 42. Not my will but thine be done; That he would write his laws in our hearts, and teach us his statutes, and acquaint us with his will, that we may do it; That he would assist us with his grace, and strength from above for the performance of his commandments; That he would mortify our lusts and the corrupt desires of the flesh: that we may not set up them in opposition to his Holy will, but bring every proud imagination in obedience to him; That we may be so acted by his spirit, that we may be quickend in every good way and work, and be carried on from strength to strength till we come to perfection; That we may have a holy emulation for the blessed spirits above, and endeavour to imitate them in yielding an obedience without delay, without murmuring, and without weariness; That we may endeavour to the utmost to find out c Rom. 12. 2. what that good, that acceptable and perfect will of God is, and to perform it, and never think we can do too much for him, or suffer too much for his sake; That we would lay aside all worldly cares, and d Luk. 1. 74, 75. serve God without fear in holiness and righteousness before him all the days of our life, and fit ourselves for the business of eternity, by having our conversation in heaven, whilst we are here on earth. Thus the three Petitions do immediately concern God, and may also have particular reference to the three Persons of the Trinity; That the name of the Father who is God blessed for ever may be exalted and glorified; That the Kingdom of his Son and his glorious presence may be hastened; That the spirit would frame our hearts to the obedience of his will. And to the three offices of Christ; By whose name as he is our Priest we are saved, whose name is above every name holy and excellent; who as King rules in our hearts, and will come in triumphant manner at the last day to own his faithful subjects and be avenged of his enemies; And who lastly as Prophet hath declared unto us the will of the Father, and came to do his will on earth as it is in Heaven, with an exact unsinning obedience. Nor is the word Thy idle, but hath a great significance, commending to us that great Gospel-duty of self-denial, which is indeed the essential character of a right Christian, who can be content to part with all, so God may have his due. For so the opposition is to be understood; Thy name not our honour; Thy Kingdom not our interest; Thy will not our humour. And thus the three petitions seem to be levelled at the world's Trinity, Honour, Riches and Pleasure. We ought not to study our own honour, but to do all for the glory of God; we must not strive for deceivable riches, but set the Crown upon Christ's head; We should not follow our own pleasure and pursue our own satisfactions and contents, but submit to God's will. It is no wonder that this holy form of Prayer was so displeasing to the ambitious and factious spirits of these latter times, a generation of self-seeekers, who meant to advance their own names, and get the power of the Kingdom into their own hand, and pretended a divine authority for their own will, as if they would have prayed rather, Our will be done in heaven as it is on earth: nor did they stick to say as much, when they fathered all their mischiefs on providence, and from their successes concluded God's approbation of their wickedness. These last words, On earth as it is in Heaven, may seem to look back upon the three precedent Petitions, after this manner; on earth, as in Heaven. Hallowed be thy Name, Thy Kingdom come, Thy will be done, May we men on earth praise and glorify thy name, adore thy power and Majesty, perform thy commands, and submit to thy holy will, even as the Angels those ministering spirits and the blessed Saints do in Heaven, saying, e Isa. 6. 3. Rev. 4. 8. Holy, Holy, Holy, Lord God of Sabaoth. Now follow the Petitions which concern us and our necessities, which are either temporal supplies of food, and a comfortable subsistence, and a daily provision, and sustenance; or spiritual wants, such as are the Pardo● of our sins, and justification by the blood of the Son of God, which was shed for the remission of sins; and the strength of assisting grace, whereby we may resist and overcome temptation, & sanctification wrought by the spirit of God, dwelling in us, and cleansing our hearts by faith. So that these three also may have respect to the three persons, seeing that they seem particularly directed to the Father for maintenance; to the Son, for pardon; to the Spirit for grace. BREAD. What more natural for children to ask, or for a father to give? Bread is the staff of life, the stay and support of nature, the chief nourishment, and that which alone will keep nature in repair, and the body in health; but is usually taken by a Synecdoche for all manner of food whatsoever, even for f 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 caro; and so the Hebrew word Zeph. 1. 17. flesh, meat and drink, whence to eat bread with one was a common form of speech, meant for sitting down at table, dining or supping and being entertained and indeed feasted with varieties. And yet more largely sometimes, (as here it is) for all the provisions and accommodations of g 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 q 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ad vitam. life, not only food but raiment, habitation, health, strength, money, friends, estate, preferment, vigour of mind, soundness of body, success in our undertake, a blessing upon our labours, comfort from our relations, with all other temporal concernments; as seasonable weather, the early and the later rain, fruitful fields, plenty, peace, deliverance from dangers, long life and a good old age; with all those good things of mind, of body, and of fortune (as we call them) which may be the objects of a right ordered natural desire; and all those additional advantages, which the custom of countries hath made convenient and agreeable to people, according to their several ranks and qualities; which are all here comprehended under the name of Bread, to teach us frugality and contentedness, that if we have but bread, we should be there withal content, and not grudge at those who have greater variety afforded them: For we are not worthy to feed upon the crumbs that fall from the table of his bounty, and if he please to allow us a portion in the children's bread, we ought to accept it with thanks from a father's hand; and that providence is never wanting to supply us with bread, David's experience hath taught us, h Psal 37. 25. who never saw the righteous forsaken, nor his seed though begging their bread. Again we may learn hence a thrifty bestowing of God's gifts, not to lavish them out in riot, or spend them on our pride, as the i Luk 16. 19 rich glutton, that wore gorgeous apparel and fared sumptuously every day; but rather to communicate God's goodness, and to distribute it amongst the poor, and let others share in our superfluities; which are the true Christian sacrifices wherewith God is well pleased, seeing that all that we ask or can challenge for ourselves is but bread, and if God give more he does it to that intent, that there may be occasions of doing good, and exercising of charity, that he that abounds may impart to him that wants. Who would grudge God, if he rightly considered it, the tenth sheaf, who hath so freely given him the other nine? Who would not cheerfully feed the poor with a scant alms, and make a dole of pence, when God has enriched him with pounds and blessed him with a fair estate? But such is the perverseness of worldly men, that they consider none but themselves, and the more bountifully God deals with them, the more niggardly they deal with others; not fearing to cheat God himself of his due, and defraud the Priest and the poor, whom God hath appointed his receivers of those small returns he expects from them for his large kindness to them. The covetous miser that pinches his own belly is a thief to himself, and turns his bread into stone. He that hoards his corn in a time of dearth, is a thief to society and inherits the curses of the people. He that spends all on himself, and considers not the poor, and robs the Church of her due, is sacrilegious and profane, and either saith not this prayer at all, or else says it not as he should; for it teaches us to say our Bread. OUR. The covetous and ambitious person is all for himself; He says in his heart, give me my Bread, and cares not what becomes of others. But this Prayer requires another kind of spirit, that we take notice of the wants of our brethren. God is not for monopolies, that any one hand should engross the whole stock of his blessings; He will not have one go away with all, and the rest have nothing left them; If he give any one more than is enough to serve his private turn, what's over and above is a trust to be laid out for the good of the community; for estates, honours and parts, and all the other advantages of life are talents, and will be called for back again with usury: we are then to have a mutual compassion as fellow members of the same body, which though they differ very much in place and condition and use, yet are they all helpful to one another, and conspire together to the good of the whole body. Nor is this all which is gathered from this word; but it teacheth us industry too in some honest way of life, for the getting of our bread: It must not be the bread of idleness, for that would prove a temptation to lust; and if we should pray here for that, ere we come to the end of the prayer we should unpray it again. It must be ours before it will be given us; that which was Adam's curse proves a blessing, k Gen. 3. 13. In the sweat of thy brows thou shalt eat thy bread; so the Psalmist construes it; l Psal. 128. 1, 2. Blessed is every one (saith he) that feareth the Lord that walketh in his ways; For thou shalt eat the labour of thy hands. No man hath a privilege of being idle; every one's to earn his living, & make his sweat his sauce; for the bread as well as the sleep of a labouring man is sweet. The gentleman himself hath a calling and though he be born to an estate, yet m job 5. 7. job tells him, that man is born to labour too. The heathen could observe that though the Gods be bountiful, yet they set their gifts to sale and will have them purchased with sweat. The Apostle's command is express, n 2 Thess. 3. 10. He that will not work let him not eat. And when we have thus made it ours, we cannot yet call it ours, or promise ourselves it will do us any good till God give it us. GIVE. If it be given, how is it ours? If it be ours, how does he give it? Till God assign it, we have no propriety; his blessing must accompany our labour to make it ours; o Psal 127. 2. It is in vain else to rise early and sit up late, and eat the bread of carefulness. What reason is there that a piece of dry bread should do any more to my nourishment then a chip of wood, or a clod of earth? or how comes it to pass that the meat which was ere while upon my trencher, is now turned into my substance, and become part of my flesh and blood, and wonderfully spreads itself over my whole body to the relief of every part, but that God conveys a blessing along with it, and hath put a strength into these creatures to nourish us, and give us suitable refreshments, and hath endued our nature with faculties and forces, by a strange kind of Chemic, to draw out that strength from them, to digest and ferment their substance, to distil and fetch from them their virtue, to throw of the refuse, to retain what's useful, and bestow it into so many little vessels, to be carried up and down through the whole fabric, and make up every defect. p Matt. 4. 4. Man (says our Saviour) doth not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God. 'Tis God's fiat that does thus virtuate and commission his creatures to serve us, and do us good; 'Tis a giving, a particular assignment of every one's allowance out of God's exchequer; 'tis not a scramble, catch that catch can. We must not snatch his gifts but stay till he give them. The oppressor, the extortioner, the griping usurer, the cozening trades man and every one that takes an ill course of life hath not what he hath given him: he will not let providence be his pourveyour, but makes his own craft caterer for his bread; he will not stay for God's allowance, but breaks open the exchequer, and plunders divine bounty. But such will find the bread turn gravel in their mouths, and those stolen waters bitter in the end. What God does not give, comes without a blessing, and 'twill be found at last that those are worst served, who serve themselves. Nor must beggars be choosers, or pass censure upon God's gifts; Be it more or less, whatever it is, it comes from the hand of a Father, and is better than a rebellious child deserves. We must neither envy those that have more given them, nor scorn those that have less, since it pleased God so to make the distribution. q Matt. 20. 15. Let not thy eye be evil because thy master is good; nor censure any one from his outward fortune. We are all children of the same Father, and if he gives one child better clothes and better fare than another, he sees very good reason to diversify his dispensations, and 'tis reason enough to quiet our thoughts that he hath so ordered it. But if our curiosity do tempt us to look out upon the condition of others about us, let us make this use of it, and compare ourselves with those above us, to learn humility, that we should not be proud for God's giving us so much, since he has given to some others more; and with those of lower degree, to practise thankfulness, that we may not grumble at God's providence who hath done better by us, then by many our betters. Let the rich be humble, because he hath nothing but what he hath received, and let the poor be thankful for the little which he hath received; and God if he see it fit for him will give him more. One particular duty at our meals we may pick out here, that we presume not to feed upon those meats which God hath prepared for us, (for so the Psalmist acknowledges. r Psal. 23. 5. Thou hast prepared a table for me and made my cup to run over) till we have craved a blessing for them, nor rise up without a thanksgiving, our Saviour's constant practice. 'Tis observed of the swine, that he wants those nerves that should draw his eyes upward, so that when he feeds on the mast and the acorns, he ne'er looks up to the tree whence they fall. He that s I●d. 12. feeds himself thus without fear or looking upward for a blessing, sacrifices to his belly and makes it his God; and with him sure, as t 1 Cor● 6. 13. the belly is for meats and meats for the belly, so God shall destroy both it and them. THIS DAY. Day by day, from one day to another without any carking thought for the future, for v Matt. 6. 34. sufficient for the day is the evil thereof. And who, that says this prayer, knows but this day may be his last? we should at least live so as if it were to be. Besides it puts us in mind of a constant dependence upon God. He that hath provided for me to day, will not let me want to morrow; we have been cast upon his care from our mother's womb, and have lived ever since we came into the world at his charges; He will not therefore cast us of now, no nor u Psal. 71. 9 forsake us in our old age, when our strength fails us. We have had so many trials of God's goodness towards us, as we have lived days and hours, we may well trust him then for the time to come. 'Tis true, all futurity to us is uncertain; 'tis not so to him: to morrow is all one with him as to day, and this is certain that he will never want power or love to help us, nor will he fail the expectation of those who put their trust in him, who is w Heb. 13. 8. the same yesterday, to day, and for ever. Let us content ourselves then with present enjoyments and not care for to morrow, for the morrow will care for itself. While we have a mouth to ask, God will not want a hand to give. And this word makes the prayer as daily as the bread it asks. Wherefore be sure be thy condition what it will, if thou sayest this Prayer every day thy daily allowance will find thee out; and be where thou wilt it shall be sent thee some way or other, x Kin. 17. 6. as the Ravens were caterers for Elias. Christ's miracles of the loaves, & his turning water into wine may assure us, that, be our provision never so scant or mean, yet if his blessing be in them, they will be sufficient for our support and comfort. DAILY. That which thou hast apportioned for us, that which God's providence has set out in the particular distributions to be our part and portion. This Petition alludes to the Manna, Angel's food, that fell every morning among the Tents of the Israelites in the wilderness, whereof y Exod. 16 18. he that gathered much had nothing over, and he that took up little had no lack; but every one enough for his eating. 'Tis so ordinarily; and 'tis little less than miracle, how so many thousand families, as are in a great city, in a nation, live by one another, and how they are provided for according to their several rates & proportions. Thus the Syriac renders it, z 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 The Bread of our sufficience, or of our proportion. He then that takes more than belongs to him, and exceeds his allowance, must look that the overplus shall stink and breed worms. The Greek word is indeed doubtful, and admits of a double interpretation; First, as 'tis derived from a word which signifies a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the day a coming; to morrow's or the next day's bread; and thus it signifies an honest care to be aforehand in the world, and not (as we say) to live from hand to mouth. And such a care does not argue distrust, but on the contrary a man's improvidence may seem to call God's providence in question: For so the Apostle pronounces of him; b ●●im. 5. ●. that he's worse than an infidel that does not provide for his family. And so before we were obliged to trust in God, because 'tis to be given, and yet take care of ourselves, and use the means, because we must make it ours, before he give it. Secondly as 'tis compounded of c 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a word that signifies substance and a particle of various use, on, over, to, beside, in, etc. 'tis rendered supper substantial bread, added to our substance, belonging to our substance, by which we are maintained or kept alive, or of an excellent substance; And so some apply it to Christ, d joh. 6. 51. who was that bread that came down from heaven, of which the Mann● was a type: Whose holy Body is in the Sacrament of the Supper represented by the symbol of Bread. And what so fit to beg of our heavenly Father, as this heavenly Bread, by which our souls are fed to life everlasting, our nature repaired and perfectly restored, our hearts strengthened, our spirits quickened and our graces kept alive. The meaning of this Petition is, that God would feed us with food convenient for us, that he would supply all our necessities and fill up all our wants; That he would as a faithful creator preserve us in the land of the living, and give us all things that he knows convenient for us in this our pilgrimage; That his blessing may every day fall round about our dwelling like the morning dew, and as the Manna lift amongst the tents of the Israelites; That he would provide for us all accommodations suitable to our condition, and to that station of life, whereunto his good providence hath designed us; That he would give us strength of body and vigour of mind, perfect health, and all natural and moral abilities, that may fit us for the discharge of our duties, and above all a contented spirit, that we may eat our bread with cheerfulness, and be satisfied with his gracious disposals of us and any condition that he shall in his wisdom cast us into, either riches or poverty; That he would neither send us so much of the world's good, as to tempt us to wantonness and riot; nor so little as to make us repine: but assign us such a competent portion that we may find a comfortable subsistence, and have where with to do good to others; That we may be enabled to provide things honest and fashionable before all men, yet not make provision for the flesh to satisfy the lusts thereof; That our food may be wholesome rather then delicious, so that in the strength thereof we may do him service; That our attire may be decent and comely, to cover shame not to show pride and vanity, that we may not turn his gifts into wantonness, or ●mbezill his talents, but employ them to his glory and others good ● and e Luk. 16. 9 make us friends of the unrighteous mammon; That he would bless our labours, and give success to our honest undertake, that we may eat the labour of our hands and it may be well with us; That he would procure us faithful friends, diligent servants, dutiful children, fruitful seasons, and furnish us with all other perquisites, that may make our condition comfortable; That he would bless the nation with righteous government, and honest magistrates, endue the nobles with courage, the commons with loyalty, bless all orders and conditions of persons from the highest to the lowest; from him that sitteth on the throne, to him that is behind the mill, enlarge all that are in distress, send us plenty and peace in our days, crown the year with his goodness, and make all his steps toward us drop fatness; that we may thankfully acknowledge his benefits, and be charitably disposed to those that are in want, that we may be tenderhearted & compassionate, not forget to communicate and distribute, and show gratitude to all those, whom he has made instruments of good to us, who have obliged us by any kindness, and pray for them that God would restore sevenfold into their bosom; That he would keep us in an humble constant dependence on him, and provide honest courses for us, that we may not eat the bread of idleness, or tempt his providence with the use of unlawful means; That he would deliver us from dangers and distresses, preserve us from rapine, and spoil, and keep us from distrusts and anxietyes about the things of this life, but that we may f Matt. 6. 35. seek first the Kingdom of God, and the righteousness thereof, assuring ourselves that then all things else shall be added to us, and whatsoever our share be of outward things, take the Lord for our portion and our inheritance; That he would to this end give us Christ the bread of life, and with him all things, and that he would with that bread which came down from heaven, feed our souls to life everlasting, strengthening our graces, pardoning our sins, and subduing our lusts. AND FORGIVE US OUR TRESPASSES AS WE FORGIVE THEM THAT TRESPASS AGAINST US. Pardon is as necessary for our spiritual life, as bread for our natural. For g Ezek. 18. 20. the soul that sins shall die. h jam. 3. 2. In many things we offend all; even i Prov. 24. 16. the righteous falls seven times a day. For k Rom. 5. 12. death came into the world by sin over all mankind, but righteousness and life came by jesus Christ; And we have daily need on't too; for l Psal. 7. 12. we provoke God every day. So then we are to hunger and thirst after the righteousness of Christ that our souls may live; And as Christ's flesh is bread indeed, so is his blood, (which he shed for the atonement of wrath and forgiveness of sins) drink indeed, the water out of that spiritual rock which is Christ. Oh, that m Psal. 42. 2. our souls might thirst for the living God as the wounded hart panteth after the water-brooks. OUR TRESPASSES. The other Evangelist useth another word debts, which comes all to one, both signifying sins, by a translated sense borrowed from dealings amongst men, betwixt creditor and debtor, the person suffering the injury, and the person doing it. For a debtor or trespasser that is not solvent, or hath not wherewith to make satisfaction, agrees with his adversary, puts it to reference, comes to composition, and by mediation of friends, takes up the business, that there may be no arrest or indictment, or other procedeur in law against him, as knowing that he should come by the worst, be cast in his fuit and be sent to prison, where he must lie by it, till he have paid the uttermost farthing; which being utterly unable to do, he must never hope to come out, but rot in prison. The same is the case betwixt God and us, we are bound to him by our creation to an observance of his laws, or to undergo the penalty of the breach which is everlasting death; But we are fallen short and are unable to discharge that debt, nor are we able to answer him one word of a thousand; so that there are due to us all the plagues written in his book; We have gone astray and done abominably, we have broken all his laws and commandments, we have been rebellious children from our youth up, and the imaginations of our hearts have been evil continually, we have neglected our duty in every thing, and have not hearkened to him to obey his voice; so that to us belongs shame and confusion of face for ever. Now Christ became our surety, took up the business, undertook our reconciliation and hath answered the law, satisfied justice, discharged our debts, cancelled the obligation, and nailed the hand writing of the law unto his cross, making a new covenant of life betwixt God and us upon Gospell-terms of grace, and new obedience; yet still we are wanting on our part and deal treacherously in our covenant, trampling upon his blood and despising so great salvation. Nay even the best of Saints have their daily slips and failings; Who is he that can justify himself? and n 1 joh. 1. 10. if any perfectist say he has no sin, he deceives himself and the truth is not in him. Our sins. All Adam's offspring, the whole race of mankind is tainted. o Psal. 51. 7. Behold (saith the holy Prophet, a man after God's own heart,) I was brought forth in iniquity, and in sin hath my mother conceived me. And p Rom. 3. 9 the Apostle has concluded all under sin, so that we are all guilty of original corruption, whereby all the faculties of our soul and members of our body are overspread, as with a leprosy, from the crown of the head to the sole of the foot, beyond the cure of all humane arts and helps; Philosophy, education, laws and punishments, shame and interest, cannot weed out this root of bitterness; nay grace itself, though it may over top it and keep it under and hinder its growth, yet cannot totally exstirpate it in this life; we are bid to strive after perfection, though it be a thing impossible to attain it; & of actual transgressions, which like impure streams flow from that filthy puddle of corruption, that's lodged in our nature, into our lives, and issue forth in our thoughts, words, and deeds; whether by omission of good or commission of evil, whether against God by impiety, against our neighbour by injustice, or against ourselves by intemperance, whether wilfully and deliberately with presumption against the light of nature, dictates of conscience and plain rules, or weakly and suddenly out of ignorance, frailty, sudden surreption or surprise, or by the hurry of temptations; whether public and notorious scandalous offences, which are loathsome to the eye of the world, and make us stink in the nostrils of those about us, or secret closet sins which lie open to God's sight, and perhaps may scape our own knowledge or be lost out of memory. From the different words the Evangelists, use some draw an argument against the formality of the whole prayer, & that therefore it is enough, if we deliver ourselves according to the meaning of the prayer and not in the very selfsame words, the words themselves being diversely reported. To this may be replied, first that this is but a contention about words; For though the two words differ a little in sound, yet they are all one in sense, and let them use which expression they like best, so they use one and observe the precept which enjoins the form. Secondly that the various reading of a word ought not to null and void the whole form so as to say that that prayer recited by St. Matthew is not the same which St. Luke rehearses: If so; then q Psal. 18. compared with 2. Sam. 22. that Psalm of David is not the same with that which is set down in Samuel, nor would the ten Commandments, as they are repeated in Deuteronomy be the same as God spoke in the xxth Chapter of Exodus, because of the alteration of some words. Indeed upon this account the whole body of Scripture might be called in question, there being hundreds of different readings in the very originals: now there can be but one right, and we have no means left us to know which is that right. But in most of these there being no point of faith or manners concerned, 'twill be indifferent which of the two we take, so we take one; or we may make use of both, and that's the third answer, That our Saviour dictating this form at two several times, at second going over might possibly vary a word or two, which may be the reason also of most (if not all) the several readings in the Hebrew and Greek Text; the writers themselves in the several copies transcribed from them, altering here and there a word. And from this ground may have sprung that liberty which the Septuagint take in their Greek Translation, they following another copy much different from the present Hebrew: And then the command obliges us indifferently to either, or if we will to both, sometimes one, sometimes the other. Not to say in the fourth place that our Saviour spoke Syriac, & the Evangelists might allow themselves the freedom of Interpreters, to translate the same word differently, it being a r 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. word probably that bears both the significations of debt and guilt; Though I must confess the Syric Interpreter affords here no help, rendering it, as the Evangelists have done, by two differing words, a liberty which he often takes s As in this very Prayer, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and here was bound to it, because the Evangelists whose words he was to translate had done so to his hand. As we forgive them that trespass against us. This is either a condition upon which we beg forgiveness, desiring to find that favour at God's hand, as our brother doth at ours, and that God would deal with us in that very manner as we deal with one another. And thus 'tis a very high obligation to charity, mutual forgiveness, and brotherly kindness: or else it may be taken as a reason of the foregoing desire, and as the other Evangelist words it, For we also forgive; That seeing we poor and wicked creatures have so much goodness as to pardon one that offends us, the great and blessed God who is goodness and love itself, would not be hard to be entreated, but would lay aside his wrath and forgive and forget whatsoever has been amiss. And in this sense the words afford a powerful argument to plead with God for pardon and an undeniable consequence, from the less to the greater, that God would yield to do out of his own infinite goodness that towards us, which his grace hath enabled us to perform to others. As. This particle here denotes a likeness but not an equality; such an As, as in those precepts of impossible duty, t Luk 6. 36. Be merciful as your heavenly Father is merciful, etc. For who can reach infinity? who can overtake him, whose ways are past finding out? as himself says in this very case, v Isa. 55▪ 9 As far as heaven is above the earth, so far are my thoughts above your thoughts, which there are meant his thoughts of mercy and love. Alas! should we coop him within our narrow model and scantling, should we make that kindness, which we show to one another, the standard by which his love must be meeted out to us; how should we dry up the breasts, and shrink the bowels of his mercy, and dwindle his bounty u joh. 1. 16. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. out of whose fullness we receive Grace for grace, or Gift for gift▪ Charity for charity, a vast unmeasurable love, as in exchange and return for that small love we have for him, and one another; for those words will very well bear that sense. 'Tis meant then not of an even, yet a just and fit proportion; that as we who are mortal and finite have a charity in us, which though bounded with the measures of time and place and strength, that we can do but little good and that but to few, and that but a little while, yet 'tis so sincere that we would to our utmost do all the good we can, and which is the greatest character of a good nature, are ready to forgive any one that offends us; So he who is the fountain of all good, the Almighty, infinite, and everliving God, would with his infinite charity, his everlasting love, entertain and embrace us sinners, and freely pardon all those offences which we have ever committed against him. Thus the reason may be the same of the most unequal numbers, and finite and infinite may walk together in the same proportion; as a finite charity is to a finite offence, so an infinite charity to an infinite offence; as man is to man, so and much more is God to man. If one man be a God to another, as charity makes him; then what is to be expected of God himself? If we that are wicked forgive one another, surely God cannot choose but forgive us. WE ALSO. This carries a great emphasis with it, and makes the request very easy, and lays a force upon God: As if one should say, will God suffer himself to be out done and outbraved by man? will the divine bounty contract itself, because he sees humane kindness enlarged? will he withdraw his own mercy, and let ours w jam. 2. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. crow over his justice? will his love want measure, & shall ours overflow? no; on the contrary 'tis a good evidence that he has shed his love abroad in our hearts already; that we can thus forgive one another is a consequent of his having forgiven us first, and a fruit of justification whereby we obtain the remission of sins. For he justifies us by the blood of his son, and sanctifies us by his Spirit. Now x Gal. 5. 22. the fruits of the spirit are love, peace, joy, long-suffering, gentleness, meekness. God other while commands us to imitate his example, as in the Sabbath-rest, etc. And on this very subject to be merciful as he is merciful, and to be followers of Christ, who y 1. Pet. 2. 23. when he was reviled, answered not again, but was led as a lamb dumb before the shearers: But here he is pleased to set himself a copy from our actions, and to take pattern of us, whereby as he does make a low condescension to draw his goodness parallel to ours, so he doth deeply oblige us to forgive one another, by putting words into our mouths by which we shall be judged if we do not; For the uncharitable person that says this prayer, prays backward, and does indeed but curse himself, and he who bears a grudging mind against his brother, puts in a caveat against himself, and prays that he may not be heard. And to a peevish, humorous, passionate, revengeful spirited man God will retort the argument. Art thou a worm and canst not endure to be trod upon? canst not thou who dwellest in the dust brook an affront, nor bear with an injury? And canst expect that the living God who is a consuming fire, should tamely put up the injuries which are offered to his honour? Dost think it reason for him to pardon thy talents, when thou canst not forbear to use violence for the recovery of a few pence. Our Saviour lays a great stress upon this argument, therefore he repeats and z Mat. 6. 1●, 15. enforces it, For if ye forgive others then will your Father also forgive you; But if ye forgive not one another, neither will your Father which is in heaven forgive you. And at the last though infidelity & impenitency may have a main hand in shutting heaven-gates against unbelievers and sinners, yet if our Saviour give us a true account of the proceedings which shall be at those great Assizes, (as 'tis Blasphemy to think he did not) the great damning sin for which reprobates will stand arraigned will be the want of charity. His offences then will be inexcusable who was a rigid exactor of other's duties to him; and who knew not how to pass by others small faults, shall not have his own great ones pardoned, he who showed no mercy, shall have no mercy showed him; as he did by others, so shall it be done by him; for a Matt. 7. 2. that measure as you meet, the same shall be meted to you again. The niggard does not take a course to thrive. Give good measure and it shall be given to you heaped, and running over into your bosom. Forgive much and thy own pardons shall be multiplied, and this kind of charity by which thou forgiv'st others shall hide a multitude of thine own sins. FORGIVE And alas! what wrong is done to us which is worth revenge, which doth not deserve a forgiveness for our own sake? The poor heathen Philosophers had that brave principle in them, that they would not disorder the quiet of their own mind by entertaining passion for another's miscarriage. Out of a generous contempt of the world they thought nothing here worth the quarrel; or at least consulting their own ease, and being in love with their tranquillity ne'er troubled themselves about what was not in their power to help. Let fools, and knaves abuse Socrates, make mouths at him, twitch him by the cloak, libel him, draw up articles against him, and at last confute his Philosophy with a draught of hemlock, he's no more angry with them, than he is with the rain for wetting him to the skin, with the puddle for wet shodding him, with a stone he stumbles at, or a post that stands in his way. he'd tell his enemy, Friend, take heed what thou dost, thou wrong'st thyself, thou canst do me no hurt; my mind's an invincible for't, thou canst not disturb it, nor is it concerned in thy weak assaults. 'Tis thy nature perhaps to do ill, 'tis mine to suffer it; an iron head-piece for a box o'th' ear. If providence hath ordered thee my executioner, I can more cheerfully forgive the injury than thou canst do it; b Epictet. Kill me thou mayst, but canst not hurt me. So high had Philosophy wrought them above the region of cloud and trouble, and the pitch of humanity, into a calm and clear serety of mind, that they lived beyond discontent, & mischief, that ill turns could not reach them, that passion was an utter stranger to them, that they baffled wrongs by taking no notice of them, and their dissimulation of injuries was their great art of living: In so much that c Iliero●l, one of them lays it down for a maxim, that A good man has no enemies. Oh! how far short are we heathen Christians of those Christian heathens? what a different temper are we of? How ready are we to quarrel about every trifle, when a word conjures up our passion, every punctilio engages our honour? who are so critical in the study of our reputation, that we examine looks, censure behaviour, and let nothing pass unscaned, that 'tis dangerous even for innocence to enter our company, and our conversation is an inquisition? We make our very tables snares, and whosoever or whatsoever we like not we judge and condemn at our pleasure, hang and draw within ourselves, and spare none we catch tripping; And if any one hath indeed deserved ill at our hands, to be sure, we let fly at him bitter words, murder him in our thoughts, and seek all opportunities for a desired revenge. And can such a one expect that God should swallow his camels, who has so queasy a stomach and narrow a throat himself, that he strains at gnats? O let no one be so desperately revengeful, so ill natured to himself, as to pursue an enemy beyond the hopes of heaven, and purchase a revenge with the loss of his soul. He forfeits his own pardon that can't forgive another. Consider at what a cheap rate God sets his pardons to sale. For thou mayst wipe off thy own score with thy brother's faults; his moats will remove thy beams. As God has made the poor his receivers, so he has appointed thy debtors and trespassers his assigns. What they can't pay thee, God strikes off of thy account; what thou forgivest them is discharged out of God's bill against thee. Thus our forgiveness like quitrent or a legal cheat, stands for a hundred times its value, and our enemies prove our greatest friends by injuring us to our happiness, and turning our shame into the advantage of our glory, by procuring us pardon of our sins, whilst we forgive THEM THAT TRESPASS AGAINST US. 'Tis such an argument as the Centurion used, and shows as much charity as his did faith. d Matt. 8. 8, 9 Do but speak the word (says he) and my servant shall be healed. For I also am one in a petty authority, and have soldiers under me, and say to one, Go and he goes, to another Come and he comes, to a third, Do this and he doth it. So we are taught to plead this request. Forgive us our sins for we also forgive offences committed against us. We have superiors that oppress us, and we bear with patience; equals that scorn us, and we in honour prefer them; inferiors that neglect us and we use them kindly, we have hard masters, severe teachers, base friends, abusive companions, stubborn children, spiteful neighbours, unfaithful servants, and yet we return not evil for evil, but give place to wrath, and according to thy command e Rom. 12. 21. overcome their evil with our good. We bless those that curse us, pray for those that wrongfully use us, do all the good we can to those who do us all manner of ill, and endeavour as much as in us lies to keep peace with all men, and readily forgive every one that doth us any unkindness, and with our f Luk. 23. 34. Saviour on the cross, pray that our heavenly Father will forgive them too, and with the first g Act. 7. 60. Christian Martyr, that God will not lay what they do to their charge. And will not the Father of mercies do so by us, and much more? will not he forgive h Psal. 130. 4. with whom there is forgiveness that he may be feared. God would want worshippers; no body would fear him, were he a cruel God, and delighted in the death of a sinner, and would accept of no other sacrifice for sin but the soul that commits it. He is merciful and gracious & long suffering, full of loving kindness, and plenteous in redemption; i Exod. 3 4. 6. as he has expressed himself in the vision of Moses. That he may forgive us as we forgive others, let us learn of him to forgive, to be reviled and not revile again, to love our enemies, to pass by offences, to wink at great faults, not to be strict in observing what is done amiss; (For if God should do so, who would be able to stand; for who knows how oft he offends?) to make a candid interpretation of other men's carriage, and judge the best of their actions, to put up wrongs, at least to put them upon God's account; as David said of Shimei, k 11. Sam. 16. 10. God hath sent him to curse me this day; and to look upon every enemy thou hast as God's scourge, and 'twill become a dutiful child to submit to his father's correction, though administered by a servant's hand; For he appoints the hand as well as the rod. God has several ways to chastise his children, and punishes some with a malicious tongue to blister their good name; to some a marriage bed proves their purgatory, or an ill neighbourhood; To others men of violence come with a commission from heaven as God's Takers, and seize on all the comforts of their lives; and remember amongst all these injuries of men, God doth no man wrong; and he may take what course he please to reduce a rebel subject to his obedience. And lastly how malicious so ever the intentions of men may be, God means all this vexation for good, and would not apply this strong Physic, but that he finds it necessary for the health of thy soul. What little reason hast thou to be offended at any man; whom God employs in the drudgery of his chastisements? How much reason hast thou to forgive and thank too any one, that doth thee such kind injuries, which reclaim thee from thy sins, and put thee in a capacity of God's pardon? And shall he that is at this pains about thee to fetch thee home to thy Father, and bring thee to Heaven, be thought to do thee ill offices, and not deserve a pardon for his courteous malice? What good shrewd turns are these? What friends more beneficial than such foes, whose mistaken rage meaning to kill cures by breaking an Impostume of pride or lust; whose cruelty while it would drive us from earth, would but give us an earlier possession of heaven, and banish us into bliss? But may one say, if this reasoning be good, to what purpose are laws, whereby men's persons and properties are secured from wrong? To what end courts of judicature, where injured persons may have right done them? Besides that war upon this account will be as unlawful as murder; and if men may not be allowed to preserve their rights by laws, and where they are overpowered to maintain them by arms, in a short time they would have nothing to lose; for one injury will invite another till they have eaten out their patient entertainer? To this I answer, 'tis true the whole tenor of the Gospel is for self-denial, taking up the cross, and bearing cheerfully all that an injurious world can put upon us; that the great character of a Christian is to be a sufferer, and that the scope of this very petition is in short, that we should deal with others as we will have God deal with us, which is freely to forgive all trespasses that are committed against us without any exception; for no other pardon can serve our turn from God's hand: (any one sin unpardoned will damn us.) Yet God has for the preservation of the civil societies of men, implanted principles of moral honesty in the minds of men, and hath prescribed rules of equity in his word, and hath set up his Vicegerents, Kings and Magistrates under them, to keep good order, that no person of loose principles that has debauched his notions, may disturb others to gratify his own lust, but may be made give account to him that l Rom. 13. 4. beareth not the sword in vain. And one may in some cases, nay must out of charity to the public, prosecute notorious offenders, as traitors, murderers, thiefs, etc. least by a patient sufferance of their mischiefs we encourage them in their wickedness, and become accessary to the guilt of any other villainy they shall commit afterwards. As for private wrongs, as slanders, &c. ones own ease would be argument enough to put a supersedeas to Law with an ingenuous man, who knows no ill by himself: it being generally seen, that he that's over eager to prosecute a scandal, justifies it. To conclude, there can be no offence so heinous, no miscarriage so mischievous, wherein Christian moderation and patience hath not place; By doing nothing to serve our own passion or interest, but all for God's glory only and public benefit; And to let our hearts even bleed in pity over those wicked wretches, who die by the hand of justice, and abate rather than improve the rigour of the law any farther than is necessary for the terror of evil works. Such was Ioshuah's carriage to Achan; m josh. 7. 19 My son (saith he) give glory to God: who nevertheless was stoned to death. We desire then in this petition, that God would blot out all our iniquities, and remember our sins no more; that he would not impute our sins to us, but cover our iniquities; that he would pardon all that we have done amiss; that he would not deal with us according to our iniquities, nor reward us according to our sins: But that he would deal bountifully with our souls, and of his free grace pardon us; that he would accept of what Christ his Son, our surety, hath done and suffered for us, to take away the sins of the world; that he would look upon his death, as a sufficient ransom, and a perfect atonement for sin; that he would sprinkle us with his blood for justification, and clothe us with the robes of his righteousness, that as our sins were imputed to him for a shameful and cursed death, so his righteousness may be reckoned to us for glory and immortality. That he would nail the hand-writing of the law against us, to the Cross, and bury our sins in his grave, that they may never rise up against us, neither to shame us in this world, nor to condemn us in the next; That he would break the rule and dominion of sin, as well as free us from the guilt and punishment of it; That he would n Psal. 51. 11. create in us a clean heart, and renew a right spirit within us; That he would o Dimitte. lose us from the bands of death and quicken us to newness of life, killing sin in us by the virtue of his death, and raising us by the power of his resurrection, who died for our sins, and rose again for our justification; That he would sprinkle our consciences from dead works, & wash away the stains of our natures & of our lives, & though our sins be as red as crimson, make them as white as wool; That he would p Psal. 19 13. keep us from presumptuous sins, & cleanse us from our secret sins; That he would lay the restraints of his grace upon us, that we may not break out into foul enormities; That he would mortify our lusts, and subdue our corruptions, and earthly affections; That the pollution of our nature and original uncleanness may be done away, by the water of Baptism in the layer of regeneration; That he would forgive us all the evil of our doing, our neglects in duty, the sins of our youth and the sins of our riper age, the vain imaginations, and the evil concupiscence of our hearts, every idle and unsavoury word, all our wicked and ungodly deeds, whereby we have dishonoured him, injured our neighbour, or abused ourselves, our own sins and our other folk's sins, our national and our personal sins, our civil & our religious sins, our rebellions & apostasyes, and our hypocrisy, our righteousness, our prayers, our charity, and our very forgiveness itself; all the transgressions and violations of his law, and the breaches of his holy commandments, sins we have committed knowingly or ignorantly, wilfully or weakly, deliberately or upon surprise, with temptation or without; all that we know by ourselves, and that he knows by us, who knows our folly and our frailty, and how brutish we are; that as his mercy is over all his own works, so he would stretch it over all our works; That he would be graciously pleased to do what he requires us to do, to love his enemies, and bless his q Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me? Act. 9 4. persecutors; That he would magnify his mercy in pardoning great sins, and not let the mercy of man exceed it; that he who is abundant in loving kindness, and full of compassion, would not come short of his creatures; that since r Matt. 18. 22. he has commanded us, if our brother offend seventy seven times, we should forgive him, he would take pattern from his own command, and pardon us our repeated abominations, wherewith we provoke him every day; that he would work in us the grace of repentance and charity, and assure us of the forgiveness of our sins, by our readiness to forgive others. AND LEAD US NOT INTO TEMPTATION. As it was not enough, that God should give, unless he would also forgive us; so neither will a bare forgiveness serve our turn to quit all that's past, unless we may have his assistance to prevent faults to come: so that in the preceding petition we desire to have our former debts struck of the score, in this we beg a stock of grace, and the supplies of the spirit, that we may run in debt no more, nor fall into any more sin. So that we entreat God to deal with us, as a tender mother with her little one that's yet unable to go alone, who takes it up when it catches a fall, and holds it when 'tis up that it may not fall again. There we called for pardon, here we ask for strength; having been often foiled by the tempter, we implore spiritual aid that God would enable us to resist Satan, that he may fly from us; to withstand evil, so that having done all, we may stand. That belonged to justification whereby we are reconciled to God, this pertains to sanctification whereby we are made like unto God, who is both all good, and s 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. I a m 1. 1 3. is not tempted of evil. AND. The Petitions which concern us have mutual connexion with, and dependence upon one another; Give us, and forgive us, and Led us not, but deliver us: whereas the others which concern God stand apart, and are not so coupled and joined together; because they are of themselves entire and complete, and one granted naturally infers the rest, every thing that belongs to God being like himself infinite. His Name, his Kingdom, and his Will, each in a manner severally including the other two; so that his glory is sufficiently provided for, if any of them hold good. For his name cannot be hallowed, unless his Kingdom come and his will be done too. And if his Kingdom come, his will must needs be done, and his name will be hallowed. Or if his will be done, 'tis a certain sign his Kingdom is come, and his name as sure will again be hallowed. But the benefits we crave for ourselves are partial, and such as God often disjoins & gives apart, as 'twere by piece-meals: For many times he bestows bread and an outward estate, where he doth not vouchsafe pardon and peace of conscience; nor gives grace always to prevent the commission of future sins, where he forgives sins past. Some men are rich to their hurt, and their fullness of bread is a curse, whilst their abundance doth but increase their debt, and their table proves their snare. Others are in God's favour though the world frown on them, and with t Luk. 16. 21. Lazarus are put to shift for crumbs that fall from the rich glutton's table, whose outward man is ready to perish for want, while the inward man lives by faith. Others may have their sins forgiven them, & yet be put upon worse conflict then bodily want, and the necessities of a short life, being buffeted with Satan, and winnowed, and exercised with strong temptations. And there may be those who, though preserved from falling into temptation, and kept from great sins by the restraints of a gracious providence, yet may not be secure as to their forgiveness, who may be damned for their little sins, every sin being in its nature high treason against an infinite Majesty. For they are all three well linked together with a copulation, seeing that any one would not do us much good without the other two, nor make sufficient provision for our necessity. Bread is for the maintenance of our natural life, justification freeing us from the guilt of sin, puts us in a spiritual life, by taking out the sting of death; and sanctification by which we are enabled to work out our salvation, instates us to the life eternal. Bread keeps us while we are on earth, Pardon rescues us from hell, and Grace conveys us to heaven; which is here meant, as that with which we are to encounter temptation, and give it the foil. LEAD US NOT. Man's life is often compared to a walk, and a pilgrimage: There are many ways and many leaders; we are often at a stand, and through ignorance know not well which way to take, and therefore have need of being led. Moses led the children of Israel through the wilderness, & joshua led them into Canaan, we seek a land of promise, and have a wilderness of temptations to pass through; and as we want eyes to see our way, so we want feet to walk it: being naturally as weak as we are ignorant, our understanding dark, and our will lame and crooked: Nay, and when we are acquainted with the ways of truth and holiness, we are apt to be misled, to go back, or start aside, and turn to the right hand or the left. We are beset round with temptations, every step we tread is snare, and unless God order our goings, and direct us in his way, and bear us up with his grace, we should every moment fall into sin, and run into error. The world, the flesh and the Devil, lay baits and traps for us. The instigations of Satan, the vanities of the world, the counsel and example of wicked men, and the corrupt desires of our own flesh misguid us, and put us upon dangerous occasions of ill, rocks of offence, and pits of destruction. Wherefore seeing that sin doth so easily beset us, we pray that God would not lead us into it; that he who is the Saviour of men, and the lover of souls, would not take up the enemy's trade, who is a v Matt 4 3. tempter first, and then u Rev. 12. 10. the accuser. That since we are ready to go astray ourselves, he would not put stumbling blocks in our way, nor countenance those evil guides and ringleaders of mischief, which seek our soul to destroy it, by leading us himself into temptation. But do not we lay an imputation upon God's goodness in praying, that he would not lead us into evil and sin? w jam. 1. 13. God tempts no man, but gives way to temptation, sometimes in mercy for the trial of his servants, and to refine their graces; whence himself is pleased to make manifestations of his presence in the fiery trial, in the furnace of affliction, as he did with the three children, though it be heated seven times over, that their faith may be as silver, seven times purified in the fire; Otherwhile in judgement, x 1. Tim. 1 20. he gives up a hardened sinner to the counsel of his own will, and delivers him over to Satan as his officer to be tempted. Thus y 1 Kin. 22. 23 put a lying spirit at one time into the mouth of the Prophets; thus our Saviour bid z joh. 13. 27. judas after the Devil had entered into his heart, do what he meant to do quickly. God leads us then when he lets us alone, and leaves us to ourselves, when he doth not deliver or keep us from temptation; for so the opposition stands, Led us not but Deliver us. And sure our state must be very sad, when God withdraws, when we have nothing left about us but cunning and powerful enemies, and a false heart within, that will sooner surrender than temptation can summon. If God go aside, we need none to lead us into temptation, we'll be our own tempters; the Devil may trust us with our selus, and not spend his artillery. We often tempt the tempter, and as if we were afraid to be led into temptation, we go of ourselves, & seek it, loving the ways of destruction and courting our ruin; thinking we cannot be too sure of damnation, we make our lust's Proctors for Hell, and (as 'twere) out of kindness to Satan take his drudgery out of his hand, lead ourselves into temptation and run head long into the pit. INTO TEMPTATION. All temptation is a trial, and every thing in the world will afford materials to make temptations of. The world is Satan's forge, in which he hammers his fiery darts, and flings about his sparkles and his firebrands. Honour, riches, pleasure are the great temptations of mankind. Prosperity an enticement to ill; Adversity a discouragement from good. He knows the several genius and inclinations of men, studies their temper, learns their humour, and interests, and knows how to give them content and gratify their corruptions, He catches at opportunities, and nicks the temptation, and shoots his darts betwixt the joints of the harness; He represents the objects at the best advantage, and fits his design to every circumstance. The forbidden fruit to tempt the woman, the woman to tempt the man. He surprises her when she is alone, that the female appetite might not have a masculine reason to rule it. The fruit was fair to look on, and sure pleasant to taste, and curiosity inhances the desire, knowledge though it be of evil being very pleasant. a Gen. 9 21. Noah's vineyard tempts him to drink, b Gen. 19 30. Lot's daughters set upon their aged father. In short there's nothing which the Devil cannot make use of to his purpose, and if need be, he will head his arrows with Scripture, as he did to our Saviour. And as every thing is thus fit for the Devil's use to be made an instrument of evil to us, so neither is he wanting in skill, (for he has c Eph. 6. 11. Rev. 11. 24. methods and depths) nor in his industry, (for d 1. Pet. 5. 8. he goes about seeking whom he may devour) to shape and apply them dextrously upon all occasions. No business, no condition, no place, no season, no person secure against him, or temptation proof. His hook is always hanging, he's always at our elbows egging us to mischief. He has no other business, no other recreation to entertain himself with, but to set gins and snares to catch souls in, it being the design of his implacable spite, to see man who by his means fell from Paradise the place of bliss to an accursed earth, fall yet lower into the torments of Hell, to be a companion to the damned spirits. He'll accompany thee to Church, and watch thee into thy closet, whatever thou art about he's at hand, he intermeddles in thy civil affairs, in thy religious duties he'll bear a part, and suggest vain thoughts; he'll buy and sell with thee, nay he'll watch and pray with thee. e Matt. 4. 1. Our Saviour himself was led by the spirit into the wilderness to be tempted, where after the preparation of a forty days fast for the conflict, he was to enter the lists and vanquish this grand enemy of our salvation. O blessed preparatory Lent! O happy encounter! when the Captain of our salvation with the buckler of faith, and girt with the sword of truth, and meekness upon his thigh, was pleased to meet this spiritual Goliath in the field, and combat with him, that he might f Rome 16. 20. tread him under our feet, g Gen. 3. 15. break his head (his strength and his policy) and h Psal 74. 14. give his flesh to be mea● for his people in the wilderness; that as the viper's flesh proves an excellent Antidote against the poison of the viper, and is a great restorative to nature, which the creature itself would destroy; so temptations might turn to advantages, and the malice of Satan improve our bliss. How little able should we be to resist him who made such fierce assaults on the Son of God himself? How little hope can we have to escape being tempted to the foulest and most horrid sins, when he had the impudence to tempt God himself (for such was Christ) to the foulest Idolatry, to fall down and worship the Devil? Oh dreadful blasphemy! Oh outrageous confidence! O a Devil void of all ingenuity, past all shame and fear! All these things will I give thee, if thou fall down and worship me. All these things, all which things? Base bold fiend, hast thou any thing to give? All too? all at a clap, false pretender, thou hast nothing to bestow of thy own but evil, hell and death, the wages of sin. All that's good is God's already, or if thou hast any thing to give, dost know, saucy creature who it is thou speakest to? wilt thou offer thy maker any thing? dost think that he'll take any thing at thine hand? If he stood in need, would he pass by all his creatures, canst imagine, to accept thy kindness? And why, fiend, this unusual bounty, & so great a present to him thou hatest? What wouldst thou have him do for't? wouldst thou purchase his favour? Hast a mind to buy thy peace and compound for pardon? spare thy gifts, bring thyself, repent and beg that thou mayst have leave to fall down at his footstool, and worship before the mercy seat; canst thou confess and forsake thy sins? Thou hast i Prov. 28. 13. Scripture for't, and thy former discourse shows thee well read in Scripture, thou shalt find favour. And what an opportunity hast thou? The Saviour of the world in thy company, (who came on purpose to reconcile sinners, and save what was lost) will be easily entreated to intercede for thee, and get admittance for a fallen Angel, nor is all his charity tied to fallen men; thy brother Angels, whom thou left'st in heaven, trust in him and worship him. And why mayst not thou hope the day of thy return is coming, now that heaven gates are set open to all that will enter, & the Kingdom of Heaven suffers violence? And thou hast greater reasons to prevail with thee for repentance then miserable men have, as knowing the great happiness thou hast parted with, and having so long felt the torments of an evil conscience, thy own hell, and of that hell which thou art heating for others. If any man were in thy case, who yet is of a shallower understanding and sense than thou art, would he not willingly leap out of those flames in which thou fryest? would he not gladly be freed from the wrath of God, which thou hast for so many ages lain under, and which for ever thou must lie under unless thou canst repent? And to what end shouldst thou stand out any longer in an enmity to him that overpowers thee, to whom thy hatred can do no hurt, who constantly baffles thy counsels & defeats thy strengths, and has bound thee with everlasting chains? one would think this very conflict might sufficiently convince thee, how poor thy malice shows, and how successless all thy attempts? No; Repentance is a doctrine to be preached only to men; as the good Angels cannot sin, so neither can the bad repent. The Devil is but enraged with the tidings of salvation, and his despair emboldens him, and he is resolved to be damned for ever. He has an inveterate hatred, and implacable malice against God, which has called him forth now unto this defiance. He hates the very thoughts of being blessed, because he cannot be so out of God's company; he hates God, as God hates sin, with a perfect hatred, and would treat with God upon no other terms then this, that God would not be. Out of hatred to God he hates himself, and is contented to forego his happiness rather than to acknowledge it, and buys his spite with endless torments. If God should reinstate him (as he is) in heaven, and enlarge him from his bonds, he would look on the favour as a more painful imprisonment, and account heaven his worse hell; Though he knows aforehand that nothing he doth against God shall prosper, he thinks it success enough of his plots, that he has shown a contempt; and in this very temptation of Christ nothing pleases him so much, as the effrontery of it, that he could (as his servant k Luk. 23. 11. Herod after did,) mock him and set him at nought, when he was not suffered to do him any more hurt. For what is it he tempts him to? that which he could not have impudence to hope would be harkened to, that which he knew was impossible for Christ in his very nature as well as in his will to do; to sin; the holy one to commit a sin. Oh audacious tempter! couldst thou offer to corrupt him who knows no sin with a bribe? couldst thou fancy the judge of all the earth could be made do wickedly for reward, when every upright judge scorns to have justice bought? many an honest lawyer will not be hired to be an advocate for wrong? But oh Devilish impudence! what, sin? He had tempted him before to distrust and then to tempt providence, and seeing Scripture, as he applied it, would not prevail, is not dismayed by a double repulse; but that he might go of with a boast, seeing he could not with conquest, shows himself right Devil, and belcheth out a blasphemy big enough to fill the wide mouth of hell. He would have his Maker and his God turn Idolater, he bids him that dwelleth on high fall down, such a fall too, as would be lower than the devil's own fall; for it must be below him, it must be to him; Fall down and worship me. Oh impudent blasphemous absurdity! what devil could put such thoughts into Satan's heart, such words into's mouth? that God, whom all the God's worship, should himself worship. For he knew very well whom he had to do with in this encounter, that he was the Son of God, having been often cast out by him, & confessing it here with an If. And whom, what wouldst thou have him worship? an image? an idol? stocks and stones? why, thou canst not persuade any men that have their reason about them to do so; What is't? some Saint or Angel? Thou know'st his Angels have charge of him and are bid worship him: what then? speak, Lucifer? me. Oh diabolical pride! oh unsufferable rudeness! which a poor creature can hardly have patience to hear; that God, at whose name the devils tremble, should be tempted by the devil to worship that devil that tempts him. Me thinks, one cannot read this passage without a great horror, and an agony of fear, that God should suffer his only Son, God equal to the Father▪ to be tempted by the devil to the foulest of sins, Idolatry, to the worst of creatures, the devil. What care and vigilance ought we to have? what fear and jealousy? How should we watch and fast; and prepare ourselves for spiritual conflicts, and beg strength from above, that our hearts may be garrisoned and kept by grace; And since Christ himself was thus brought into the clutches of Satan, what great reason have we to pray that we may not be led into temptation? Now there is a twofold temptation: one for trial, whereby God doth keep the graces of his Saints in exercise; so l Psal. 7. 10. God searches the hearts, and tries the reins of the children of men, as silver is tried in a furnace. Thus Abraham's faith, Iob's patience, etc. were tried, nay sometimes God leaves his best servants to themselves, and lets them catch falls to keep them humble, and to let them know that their strength is from him. God tempts for trial, the devil only tempts for sin, and sometimes too God employs the devil in his trials to heat the furnace, which he does with an intention to destroy, but God orders for experiment and probation. Another is for hurt, when we are tempted to sin, to presumption or despair. Thus God tempts no man, but judicially hardens impenitent sinners that harden themselves in their evil way, and gives them up to their lusts, and into the power of the devil. Thus we read he hardened Pharaoh's heart, put sometimes a lying spirit into the mouth of the Prophets, let Satan tempt David to carnal confidence, and the pride of numbering his people; and our Saviour after the devil had filled judas heart, bid him do what he meant to do quickly; meaning that horrid treason of betraying his Master. And of this kind of sinful temptation is this especially to be understood, though it mean also the other kind of trials. BUT DELIVER US FROM EVIL. This infers the contrary; that since we have so many to lead us into temptation, God would rather lead us out, and keep us from evil then lead us into it. The opposition lies in the words Led us not, but Deliver us, i.e. bring us not into temptation, but when we either of ourselves fall into it, or are by others led into it; do thou bring us out, and lead us forth, rescue us out of the tempter's clutches, and set us at liberty; for so m 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 a Verb more often construed with 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the word properly denotes deliverance out of an evil we are already in; though the n 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. preposition will very well bear this sense, that God would keep us totally from it; as the Church teaches us to pray as well in time of health & plenty, as mortality and dearth, from plague, pestilence and famine good Lord deliver us. We are kept from evil by preventing or restraining grace, we are delivered out of it by assisting grace. God keeps us from being tempted by the restraints of his grace and providence, by alarming conscience, by quenching lust, by denying opportunities for sin, by employing a man, and filling all his time with duty; For 'tis the idle soul that commonly proves the tempters, prey; Diligence in one's calling is a good preservative against vain thoughts, and checks the approach of temptation, shutting the doors & windows by which it should enter. God delivers us out of temptation by proportioning it to our strength, so that we may not faint or o 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, Eph. 3. 13. grow evil under it, which he doth either by lessening the burden or strengthening the shoulders, by supporting and bearing us up in conflict, by making our faith victorious with heavenly supplies of grace, p Phil. 1. 19 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 a word whence the English charge is derived. by the aid & at the charge & provision of his spirit, and in fine by giving us a joyful issue out of our temptations; as he did with joseph, by making his brethren's envy an occasion of his advancement, with the Israelites, by a wonderful delivery from a cruel bondage; with job, making his righteousness break forth as the Sun before his setting, after those dismal storms and clouds, which had darkened it. Thus 'tis Gods usual course to heighten the rewards of his tried servants, which q 1. Tim. 4. 7. have fought a good fight, and lays up a crown of glory for them. Indeed in every temptation the tempter comes by the worst, and 'tis to the devil's disadvantage; for if it take, 'tis true 'tis his hellish delight to see souls perish, yet however it increases his guilt as being accessary to another's sin, and consequently must needs increase his punishment & improve his torments: If it meet with repulse, it cannot choose but be great torment to this spiteful spirit to see that he has been instrumental in raising the happiness and furthering the salvation, and heightening the glories of the Saints; every baffled temptation is a step higher into glory, and (if I may say it) we get up to heaven on Satan's back, by trampling him under our feet. A Saint goes triumphant with a train of conquered lusts and (as Samson carried away the gates of Azza) breaks the gates (the powers) of hell to force his passage. None in so high a form of glory as those who have most scars to show, and who have the buckler of their faith battered and shattered with temptations. We are to fight under Christ's banner, and he will be most blessed who shall be found likest his master, and have the marks of Christ's wounds imprinted not so much upon their body as the Legend has it of St. Francis, I mean by outward sufferings, as upon his soul by the violent assaults of temptation. St. Paul indeed t Gal 6. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. says of himself, I wear the marks of our Lord jesus in my body: it may be that which s 2. Cor. 12. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. in another place, we render a thorn in the flesh, a word, which doth usually signify the fork or cross upon which stigmatised and branded slaves were executed. And then it may signify the mark of the cross, that opprobrious servile and accursed death. But is resolved by most Interpreters to be a metonymical speech, and to stand for some great carnal temptation, with which the Apostle was fiercely and frequently set upon. And so every man hath some peculiar temptation fitted to his temper, which being conquered adds to his glory. It is the whole duty of man, (his life being a warfare) to be always upon his guard, to buckle & combat with the tempter. t Luk. 13. 24. Strive to enter in at the straight-gate says our Saviour; v 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a word borrowed from the Olympic games, and prizes, and signifies u Quinquortium. five kinds of exercise, leaping, running, hurling, darting and wrestling. And the whole New Testament is full of Agonistical expressions, though the reward proposed to the conqueror in those strifes were but some fading chaplet of flowers, but lusts conquered gain w 1. Pet. 5. 4. a crown of glory which will never wither. If temptation were not, Grace would lose its exercise, and Glory its improvement; Wherefore in the opposite request we desire not to be delivered from the temptation itself, but FROM EVIL. From the evil of temptation, for there is a good use of temptations as God order them. We are liable & exposed continually to temptations. But God takes out the sting and the venom of them, and whilst the wicked fall under the evil, the righteous go free: that what is said of God's preservation in time of Epidemical infections, that though thousands fall at thy right hand it shall not come near thee, is as true in a spiritual sense. Evil here may bear the same meaning with temptation, thus. From the evil one, that is, from the tempter, that enemy. And thus 'tis said, x 1. joh. 5. 19 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the whole world lies in the evil one, is at his dispose, who is the Prince of the world. And so our desires would be, that God would not himself tempt us, but rather deliver us from the tempter. But 'tis best to take words in the largest sense, from evil, i.e. from all manner of evil, both bodily & ghostly, both temporal and eternal, both of sin and of punishment. And thus it will contain in it a whole Litany that God would deliver us from a hard heart, and a seared conscience, from a reprobate mind & corrupt affections, from presumptuous sins and contempt of his word, from gross miscarriages and secret wickedness; from murder and whoredom, and every deadly sin, from pride vain glory and hypocrisy, from envy malice and all uncharitableness, from any thing that may prove an occasion of fall, from the pomps and vanities of the world, from the evil concupiscences of the flesh, and from the suggestions of Satan; from the influence of lewd examples, and from the enticement of evil company, and from the foolish counsel of our own will; from all opportunities and conveniences of sinning; from fire, and sword, and pestilence, and famine; from all those curses which are due to us for our sins, from all manner of calamities whether in body, or mind, goods, or good name; from sudden or untimely death; from maims, sickness or deformity; from ignorance, folly, and mistakes; from unruly passions and disordered thoughts; from rapine, plunder and oppression; from war and civil broils; from having too much or too little; from being lifted up in prosperity, or cast down in adversity; from honour and dishonour, from shame & reproach, from meats and drinks, from our business and recreation, from our enemies, from our friends, and from ourselves; in short, from every thing, so far forth as it may procure us evil. To sum up the meaning of the whole Petition together, which we have delivered by parts; we desire of God, that he would not only pardon sins past, but would furnish us with strength from above, to resist temptations hereafter, and having had our sins forgiven we may sin no more, nor return again to folly; that his justifying grace may be accompanied with sanctifying grace, which may keep us blameless, that we may become temples of the Holy Ghost, and he may dwell in our hearts by faith, which may quench the fiery darts of the evil one; That he would not leave us to ourselves at any time, but instruct us with his eye, and guide us in the way which he shall choose for us; That he would not for our many provocations, in judgement, harden our hearts & deliver us up to a reprobate mind and dishonourable affections, or upon our frequent refusals of grace offered, conclude us under a state of impenitence, and give us into the power of Satan, to be led captive at his will, who is the God of this world who rules in the hearts of unbelievers; That he would hedge our way about, so that the opportunity of sin may be denied us, and that, though it easily beset us, yet we may not fall into it; That he would keep us from presuming on his mercy, or despairing of it, that so being carried with the full sails of faith, as neither to split at that rock and make shipwreck of a good conscience, or sink in this gulf and be swallowed up in sadness, we may work out our salvation with fear and trembling; That he would not bring us into any distress or difficulty, which might be too hard for us, but would support us in it, and give an issue out of it; That he would be our sun and our shield, our light and our strength, to direct and secure our paths, that, though we are surrounded with temptations, yet he ordering our steps, our soul may escape as a bird from the snare of the fouler; That he would save us from the destroyer, that walks to and fro on the earth, seeking whom he may devour; shorten the tempter's chain, and put a hook in his nostrils, that neither the devil, nor any wicked man, or evil thing, may have power to hurt us; That he would keep us in his ways, lest our foot should at any time dash against a stone of offence; That he would refrain our foot from every false way and work, suffer no vanity to have dominion over us, that we may not grow worse under his judgements, or his mercies, but that all the dispensations of his providence about us may be so improved, that his fear and love may constrain us, and keep us in the walk of our duty; That he would preserve us from sin, and the shame and punishment which attends it; that he would not let the fierceness of his wrath break out upon us, nor shower down those many plagues upon our head, which our multiplied rebellions have deserved; That he would stretch out his loving kindness, renew his compassions, and never forget to be gracious, but deliver us when we call upon him that we may glorify him; That he would save us out of the hands of our spiritual enemies, (as y 〈◊〉. 1. 74. himself hath promised) that we may serve him without fear; That he would overcome the world for us, mortify the old man, and trample Satan under our feet: Finally, that he would save us to the uttermost and completely in our z 1 Thess. 5 23. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. whole man, body, soul, and spirit, from all, and all manner of evil whither of this life or of that to come, and would so contrive all events, and lay the plot of his eternal purposes, that all things may work together for our good and procure our everlasting welfare. FOR THINE IS THE KINGDOM, THE POWER, AND THE GLORY FOR EVER AND EVER. This is the Doxology, which either comes in as a Confirmation to back the foregoing petitions, or is added as a bare Confession, it being usual, that in sacred writings that particle for, or because is not always brought in as a causal or rational influence, but is many times simply narrative. In this later sense the several words may be taken to mean the same thing, as in a Dan. 5. 31. Rev. 5. 13. Daniel's prophecy and the Revelation many such synonyma's are heaped together; and in the Psalms several in several places used indifferently, to show that too much cannot be said, or too many expressions made use of, to set forth divine Majesty. We end our Prayer then in an adoration of his exeellencyes, and a deep acknowledgement of his greatness, represented under a threefold term, Kingdom, Power and Glory, which are farther raised and lifted up beyond our conception by the infinity and eternity of them. His Kingdom has neither beginning nor end of days; his power admits no bounds, knows no end; and his glory as himself, is, and was, and is to come; And as the Church hath worded it, which was but a pious descant upon this piece of the Lords Prayer. Glory be to the Father, to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost. As it was in the beginning, is now, and ever shall be, world without end, Amen. In the former sense 'tis laid at the bottom of the Prayer, as a ground & foundation of it, as if we were pleading to be heard; Nor do we in these our requests, seek ourselves, or study and design our own emolument and advantage, but our souls are touched with a love to thy name, and we humbly desire thee to accept these petitions in order to thy own glory, which will receive some advantage even then, when the necessities of us thy creatures are supplied. If thou be graciously pleased to hear us in these our desires, Thy Kingdom will be advanced, thy power made manifest, and thy Glory promoted. 'Tis not for ourselves we ask, nor can we think our poor concernments an argument sufficient to ground a confidence on, but for thy name's sake. Alas! should we aim at Kingdom, power or glory, what poor short-arm'd●, short-lived thing would it be, bound up within the measure of a transitory life of a span length? but thine lasts to ages of ages, thy Kingdom has the same date as eternity, never commenced, never shall exspire; thy power reaches from everlasting to everlasting, and thy glory endures from generation to generation. 'Tis our earnest request that thou wouldst provide for the honour of thine own name, that thou wouldst not be wanting to thyself in the vindication of these thy glorious attributes, nor let them suffer by turning thy face away from our prayers. And thus these three words may cast back a respect to the several petitions, as has been before observed; to those which concern God, in this manner. Thine is the Kingdom, therefore let thy Kingdom come, since it doth of due belong unto thee. Again thine is the power, therefore let thy will be done; for whose will should carry but his, whose will no one can resist? And lastly, which was proposed first in the petitions, (that the Prayer might begin and end alike, and God's glory might be the 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 of it.) Thine is the glory, therefore h●llowed be thy name. And in subordination to these we proceed to ask in our own behalf, wherein yet those attributes seem to be no less concerned, with some such reflection as this. Thine is the Kingdom, wherefore give us bread; it was a b Gen. 41 56. Pharaoh's care to provide bread for his subjects: how much more will our King and our God supply all our wants, and allow us necessaries? Thine is the power, therefore forgive us our sins, for c Mar. 11 7. who has power to forgive sins but God? Oh! that it would please thee to show this thy power in pardoning our iniquities, and not in avenging them! and lastly again, Thine is the glory, wherefore lead us not into temptation, whereby we may bring dishonour to thy name; but deliver us from evil, that we may glorify thee, the author of all our good. And all these requests to be granted not for the present only, for a day, or an age; but this provision for his own glory and our wants to be for ever; because his Kingdom and his power, which are the store, whence this provision is to be made, and his glory, which is to be provided for, are for ever; as also our wants need a continual supply. Now these his attributes having been in ages past, and being to last for all ages to come, by former experience of those that have been before us, and our own, beget a confidence for the future, that as d Psal. 22. 5. our fathers trusted in him & were not ashamed, so succeeding generations shall find, 'tis not in vain to seek him, and that he, whose goodness is unexhausted, will not be weary of doing good. So that the eternity of God's perfections engages our posterity to hope in him, and concludes this prayer fit to be used as long as the world endures. This Doxology or Conclusion of the prayer is set down only by St. Matthew; St. Luke mentions it not, and accordingly the Church in her offices leaves it out; nor does this difference plead any thing against the formality of the prayer itself, or the omission of this part prove, that the whole may be omitted and laid aside. For as't has been said before, Christ proposed this Prayer upon two several occasions, at two several times; one was, e Matt. 6▪ 9 when he was preaching his Sermon on the mount before a great multitude of au●ditors, wherein he delivers in a large discourse the sum of Christian institution, and the duties of a holy life, of which Prayer being none of the least, himself propounds a pattern for imitation and use. f Luk. 11. 1. The other was more private in the company only of his disciples, when after he had been at prayers by himself, they desired him to teach them to pray, as john had done his disciples, whereupon he gives them this form for their constant use, at least upon solemn occasions, when ye pray, say, etc. Now this latter appointment of it leaving out the conclusion shows, that it is not an essential part of the Prayer, necessarily belonging to it, but an addition that may be spared, indifferent to be used or not; wherefore whether thou say the Lord's Prayer this way or that, so thou say it one way or other, either with this addition according to St. Matthew, so as to be one of the Christian multitude; or without it according to St. Luke, so as to be one of the disciples, we shall not quarrel; only do not thou quarrel at his wisdom, who thought fit to vary some expressions in the self same form, on purpose to please thee, that thou mightst have a liberty of choice, there being an express command to use it, and thou left to thy freedom to take which thou wilt. One thing may yet perhaps be objected, why the Church should follow St. Luke in this omission, and take the rest from St. Matthew, whose words in expressing the fourth and fifth petitions differ from St. Luke's? To this some perhaps will answer that the Doxology is of a questionable authority, as supposed to have crept in out of the scholion or margin into the text, wherefore it being without all doubt omitted in St. Luke's Gospel, & being doubted in St. Matthew's, (the Vulgar & Arabic Translations having it not▪) that the use of it might breed no scruple it was thought fit to be quite left out: But allowing it a full authority, the Church may surely be allowed the same freedom, which any private Christian hath, of using which form it shall think fittest for public service. Wherefore seeing both the Evangelists do agree so far as the petitions, which make up the prayer, the Church might judge it convenient to lay aside the rest, and therein follow St Luke. And again because St. Luke's language is more elegant, and difficult: St. Matthew's on the other side, according to the simplicity of the Hebrew style, being more plain and facile, might consequently be deemed fitter for popular use, especially when St. Matthew himself says that our Saviour did dictate it to the multitude; which variety of style together with the custom of Interpreters, (who are used to render the same things differently,) being considered, may also evince that this prayer, though delivered by our Saviour upon two several occasions, might be the very same in the Syriac language, which our Saviour used, though it be diversely expressed in the Greek: St. Matthew perhaps more closely adhering to the words then St. Luke, who according to his genius, to keep an accurate propriety of the Greek tongue, might take the liberty a little to vary. And of this we might produce many instances, in several discourses of our blessed Saviour related by them both, which though variously reported by both, nay by all four, yet were plainly meant for the same, so that both the forms, though not exactly agreeing in all the words, are but the same Prayer, and he that uses either of the forms says the Prayer, no less than he that should say it in Latin according to Pagnin's, or Steven's or Beza's Translation, who yet may differ in the plainest sentences, (as not using the same pen, and possibly sometimes out of the mere study of variety) shall be thought to say his Pater Noster in Latin; only he that would use it in Latin, would no question choose that Latin translation which he thought came nearest the Original, which is here the Church's case. AMEN. This is a word our Saviour, (who was truth itself, & therefore called in the Revelation the Amen) had in his mouth often, and seldom began any discourse of weighty moment, but he fronted it with this asseveration, many times doubled too, Amen, Amen, I say unto you, i.e. Truly, Truly) as g Matt. 16. 2●. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Luk 9 27. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. St. Luke expounds it) or Verily, Verily. But the chief use of it is at the end of our Prayers, especially in public devotion, where the Priest's blessings and services are to be attended with the people's acclamation; an ancient custom, as appears by the Psalm, h Psal. 105. 17. And let all the people say Amen. It has a double significancy in it, not only to gather up the whole Prayer which went before, and throw it out at a word, with a fervent desire, that our requests may be heard and granted; But also to denote a confidence of obtaining, and an assured trust, that what we have been praying for, will not be denied us. It claps a Fiat to the Prayer, as the Septuagint render it, i 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. So be it, and seems to demand performance. FINIS. THE EXPLANATION Of the APOSTLES CREED. THE APOSTLES CREED. I Believ in God, the Father Almighty, maker of heaven and earth. 2. And in jesus Christ, his only Son, our Lord. 3. Which was conceived by the holy Ghost, born of the Virgin Mary. 4. Suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, dead, and buried. 5. He descended into hell; The third day he rose again from the dead. 6. He ascended into heaven, and sitteth at the right hand of God the Father Almighty. 7. From thence he shall come to judge the quick and the dead. 8. I believ in the holy Ghost. 9 The holy Catholic Church: the communion of Saints. 10. The forgiveness of sins. 11. The resurrection of the body. 12. And the life everlasting. Amen. Of the Apostles CREED. THe Apostles (as some deliver it) before they went into the several quarters of the world, to preach the Gospel to all Nations according to Christ's command, met and agreed upon the common form of Doctrine, which they should teach in each Province, wherein the sum of Faith might be set down. Others are of an opinion, that some grave and pious men did, at the beginning of the primitive Church, gather the sense, if not the very words, out of the Apostles writings. Now Symbolum bears a double meaning; for it signifies, first, a military badge, or watch word; by which a soldier may know one of his own side from an enemy: So this distinguisheth a true Christian from an Infidel, or an Heretic. Secondly, a shot a Rather Symbola, whence à Symbolis esse to meet at a club. or club, when every one pays his share towards the reckoning: Because the Apostles laid their heads together, b à 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 confero. and every one contributed his piece. Wherefore it is also divided into twelve Articles according to their number: but it is more conveniently distributed into three main parts, that it may answer the Trinity of Persons, and their threefold operation; thus. The first part treats of God the Father, & the work of Creation, whereby he made the world and all things that are contained in it. The second of God the Son, and the work of redemption, whereby he restored mankind fallen by sin; and by his death and resurrection purchased Salvation for us. The third of God the Holy Ghost, and the work of sanctification, whereby he doth apply to the Church (that is) to the company of believers, the benefits purchased by Christ, to wit Pardon, Grace, and Glory. The first Article. I BELIEV. This word belongeth to all the parts of the Creed. We pray for others, we believ only for ourselves. Thy Faith hath saved thee, c Matt. 9 22. saith our Saviour. Faith is either taken for the Doctrine d Quam, which we believ, or the grace e Quâ credimus. by which we believ; That is in the head, this in the heart. Again Faith is divided into Historical, Temporal, and Saving Faith. The first the Devils have f jam. 11. 19 who believ and tremble. The second is of hypocrites g Mar. 4. 17. who believe for a time and fall off. The last doth properly belong to the elect, who are therefore called Believers, and the faithful, who hold out to the end & h Heb. 10 38. live by their Faith. Now Faith is a full persuasion of mind, and a sure confidence, by which we depend upon him, in whom we believ. IN GOD. We are said to believ i Deum a God, when we acknowledge that there is a God, and he that is such an one, as he hath discovered himself in his word, and works: to believ k Deo. God, when we are persuaded that his word is the very truth, and that whatsoever he hath promised, or threatened in holy Scripture shall surely come to pass: to believ l In Deum. in God, when we place all our hope and trust in his power and goodness, who both will help those that trust in him, because he is a Father, and can, because he is Almighty. God is of an infinite nature, which exceeds all bounds of time or place, much less can be comprehended by our shallow understanding. we cannot know; but we must believ; and this very Faith doth as much exceed reason, as reason doth sense in evidence and certainty. The Holy Trinity, by which three Persons are one God; and the Incarnation of the Word, by which two Natures meet into one Person are high and deep mysteries, not to be reached by the eye, not to be fathomed by the plummet, of our reason; but Faith takes the height with a Iacob's staff, and humble Hope fastens her Anchor in the bottom of this depth; and diffusive Charity embraceth the whole compass of Divine truth. THE FATHER. The Deity is distinguished into three Persons, the Father, the Son, and Holy Ghost; and these Three are One and the same God. the Father begets the Son, the Son is begotten of the Father, the Holy Ghost proceeds from both the Father, and the Son. God is the Father also of all things; for of m Rom. 11. 36. him, and to him, and through him are all things. ALMIGHTY. Who can do all things, and doth whatsoever he pleaseth both in Heaven and in Earth: neither is there any thing too hard for him; for n Rome 9 19 who hath resisted his will? Yet God cannot lie, call back yesterday, or make the same thing to be, and not to be at the same time: for these are marks of extreme impotence, not omnipotence, and God would not be God if he could do them. MAKER. God's power is not idle. Even before he made, he decreed to make, and his thoughts were busy about the work of creation from eternity. He made not as workmen do of stuff lying before them; for he made all things of nothing: nor with pains and weariness; for o Psal. 148. 5. he spoke and they were made; He did not only make the world, and then leave it to its self, as Masons do houses they build, but he preserves and governs too, and disposes all events to his own glory. OF HEAVEN AND EARTH. That is, of the whole world, whereof heaven and earth are the principal parts. He spread out the earth as a floor, and built up the walls, and laid the roof of heaven; he stored the elements with several creatures; the heaven with stars, as lamps hung out; the air with birds, the water with fishes, the earth with beasts. He made heaven & earth, and all things therein contained, in the space of six days; but the chief of all his works were Angels the citizens of heaven, and Men the inhabitants of the earth, made after his own likeness, and endued with understanding, and excellent gifts: But some of the Angels with Lucifer by reason of pride, left their station, and turned Devils: All mankind fell in Adam by disobedience from a state of innocence and happiness into a state of sin and misery, so that by nature we are the children of wrath; but by grace become the children of God; and that by means of the Son of God, who became the Son of Man, that he might save the children of men. The second Article. Here begins the part of the Creed concerning Christ the second Person. Now Christ is considered either in his Person, or in his State; which is twofold: the state of Humiliation, and the state of Exaltation. And in jesus Christ, his only begotten Son our Lord. The Person of Christ consists of two natures, Divine, and Humane: for as soul and body make up man; so God and man are one Christ. He is described here by his names & titles. The names are jesus and Christ, by which are noted his offices. The titles which are given him, that he is the only Son of God, and our Lord, show partly his essence, partly his dignity. AND. He who believes the Father must also believ the Son: for p joh 2. 23. he who denieth the Son, hath not the Father. IN. It must be the same saith, by which we believ Father and Son; since both Father and Son are the same God, q joh. 10. 30. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 unum & 14. 1. I and the Father are one, saith he; and therefore as Ye believ in the Father, believ also in me. JESUS. That is, Saviour; for he came into the world to save sinners, that he might reconcile God and man, and recover fallen man out of the state of sin and misery, into a state of grace and glory. He saves from sin, and from the punishment due to sin, and freeth us as well from the power as guilt of sin. CHRIST. Messias in Hebrew and Christ in Greek is all one as in Latin anointed. Now three kinds of men were wont to be anointed, that is, to be consecrated to their office by pouring oil upon their heads; to wit King, Priest, and Prophet. Christ was r Psal. 45. 8. anointed with the oil of gladness above his fellows, that is, extraordinarily furnished with gifts of the holy Spirit. Melchizedeck was King and Priest; Samuel Priest and Prophet; David Prophet and King, Christ alone the thrice greatest, King, Priest, and Prophet. King by subduing our enemies the world, the flesh, and the Devil, and ruling our hearts by his word and spirit. Priest by offering up a perfect sacrifice for us, satisfying divine justice for our sins, and by blessing us by a perpetual intercession. Prophet by revealing the will of the Father, and discovering to us all things which belong to salvation. HIS ONLY BEGOTTEN SON. God hath many sons, but Christ is the only begotten. God is styled s jam. 1. 17. the Father of lights, and s Heb. 12. 9 the Father of spirits; and the Angels are t job 1. 6. called the sons of God; Magistrates v Psal. 82. 6. children of the most High, because they resemble him in power and dignity; and all Godly men are by grace made u Rom. 8. 16. the children of God. Now there is a vast difference betwixt Christ and these. All creatures by creation, blessed spirits by imitation, Princes and Rulers by institution, Believers by adoption; become God's children. But Christ alone is his Son by eternal generation, of the same nature, and essence with the Father, begotten of his substance before all time, God of God, Light of Light, very God of very God, equal to him in all things, as to the Godhead. Christ as the Son of God had no Mother, as the Son of the Virgin no Father, who became Man that he might in the flesh satisfy for the sins of the flesh: yet continued God that he might appears the anger of an offended God: Man that he might suffer death, God that he might overcome it. w 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. God and Man that he might be a perfect Mediator, and might reconcile God to Man by atoning wrath; and man to God by destroying sin; wherefore he took up humane nature, put not of the divine. But these two natures were united, and as it were married in the one Person of Christ. OUR LORD. In respect of God, Christ is called the Son which shows his essence; in respect of us a Lord, which shows his dignity. Now he is our Lord both by right of creation, because he made us; and by right of redemption, because he hath bought us with a price, and purchased us with his blood to be a peculiar people. We are no longer than our own, that we should fulfil the lusts of the flesh; But we are Christ's the Lord's, to do his Will, and keep his Commands. The several Steps, by which Christ humbled himself, and Divine Love moved towards us, are his Conception, Birth, Passion, Crucifixion, Death, Burial, and Descent to Hell. The infinite is conceived, the everlasting is born, the Blessed suffers, the King of Heaven is nailed to a Cross, the immortal dyes, the Immense is buried, and the King of Glory goes down to Hell. What strange contradictions have our sins put the Son of God upon, who to procure our Salvation denied himself, and put on the form of a servant? Which was conceived of the holy Ghost, born of the Virgin Mary. CONCEIVED. That is, clothed with flesh, form and fashioned into bodily parts, endued with sense, motion, and a reasonable soul inlivened, cherished, produced, preserved, increased, and in one word made man, Humane nature being taken up and joined to the Divine. OF THE HOLY GHOST. Not begotten of his substance, for then the third Person should be Father too, which is contrary to Faith: but by the operation of the holy Spirit, the power of the Highest overshadowing her, the Virgin without the help of man conceived; which is a miracle foretold by the Prophets, and fulfilled in our Messias. x Isa 7. 14. Behold a Virgin shall conceiv and bring forth a Son. now the holy Ghost did separate that most pure mass of flesh & blood, of which the Body of Christ was to be form, from all corruption of our nature and the stain of sin, to which all other (the Virgin herself not excepted) are liable, who are born after the ordinary way of generation. y Psal. 51. 5. Behold, saith David (a man after God's own heart) I was conceived in sin, and in iniquity hath my mother brought me forth. Moreover, 'twas necessary that he should be born without sin, who came to die for other's sins: and the Lamb of God which was to take away the sins of the world should himself be spotless: He could not have been our surety, had he been himself a debtor, nor satisfied justice for us, could the law have charged him with any guilt of his own. BORN. Having taken upon him a true body, being in all things made like unto us, sin only excepted, flesh of our flesh, and bone of our bone, that he might truly become the Son of Man, he observed the laws and customs of humane nature, and after he had continued in the womb the usual time, he was at length brought forth into light, laid in a manger, wrapped in swaddling clothes, and attended by the Virgin, and bred up, passed his child hood in performing z Luk 11. 51. 52. obedience to his parents, and grew in stature and wisdom. OF THE VIRGIN. It became God thus to be born, not without a miracle. Our Faith is full of miracles; a Three-One God, a God-Man Christ, a Virgin-Mother Mary. A Virgin she was before her delivery, in her delivery, and after her delivery; for they who are called a 1. Cor. 9 5. the brethren of the Lord are after the manner of the Hebrew speech to be understood as Kinsmen. She was indeed espoused to joseph but she knew no man. Her Virginity dignifies a single life, her betrothing justifies the married state. It pleased God to choose a woman without the help of man in the business of our salvation, for the honour and comfort of that sex, that as by the disobedience of the first woman mankind fell, so it might be recovered by the birth of the Virgin; and Mary might make amends for the miscarriage of Eve. MARY. For the greater certainty the name of the Royal Maid is expressed; she being of the tribe of judah, of the lineage of David the King, according to the Prophecies concerning the Messias. Yet the Mother of the Lord, this Blessed Virgin was very poor, to show that Christ's Kingdom was not of this world, and in this were the blind Jews offended, that they looked for outward pomp, & the glory of an earthly crown, little heeding the foretellings of the Prophets, wherein Christ is described b Isa. 53. 3. a man of sorrows, to suffer all the punishment due to our sins, to wit, death, and all the miseries of an afflicted life. Suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, dead, and buried. We pass immediately from his birth to his Passion; for indeed his whole life from his cradle to the Cross was nothing else, but a continual passion, being spent in hunger, thirst, fasting, watching and travelling, grief, reproach, and shame; and he was therefore sent into the world that he might die▪ and to this end God prepared him a body that he might lay down his life for His. SUFFERED. Having undertaken our cause he satisfied divine justice, by undergoing those penalties, which God in his word hath threatened to the transgressors of the law; He was by the sentence of an earthly judge condemned to death; that we might be acquitted before the heavenly Father. UNDER PONTIUS PILATE. In that time, wherein Pontius Pilate was Governor of judea, being set over that Nation by the Roman Emperor; when was fulfilled that Prophecy, which foretold the coming of the Messias should be, c Gen 49 10. when the Sceptre was departed from judah, that is, when the jews should be subject to a foreign power, having lost their own government. CRUCIFIED. Christ being betrayed by judas, forsaken of his disciples apprehended as a malefactor, is brought to the judgement hall, and having been spit upon, and mocked by the soldiers, accused by the Priests with the charge of blasphemy, persecuted with the hatred of the people crying, d Mar. 15. 13. Crucify him, Crucify him, scourged with whips, crowned with thorns and besprinkled with large showers of his innocent blood, is at last by Pilate delivered up to the will & malice of his enemies; who nailing his blessed hands stretched wide open to the Cross beam, and his holy feet closed together to the upright beam of the Cross, exposed him naked to public shame, being hung betwixt two thiefs, in a place without the city, at the Feast of Passeover; and when he had given up the ghost with many pains and groans, a soldier pierced his side with a lance, that that saying might have place, e joh. 19 37. they shall look on him, whom they have pierced. DEAD. By the separation of soul and body; for his body remained upon the Cross and his soul returned immediately to God, as himself told the penitent thief. f Luk 23 43. This day shalt thou be with me in Paradise. He was not born after an ordinary manner, neither died he a common death: for as much as beside the extreme pain he suffered, whilst he hung with the weight of his body upon the Cross, and the great shame to which he lay open, he lay under a curse, g Gal 3. 13. the Law pronouncing him cursed that hangs upon the tree. AND BURIED. Taken down from the Cross, embalmed with spices, wrapped up in fine linen, and laid in a tomb, where none had lain before, by the care and cost of h Mar. 15. 43. joseph of Arimathea. And the malice of his enemies pursued him beyond death, and attended him to his very grave, who, that he might not rise again as himself had promised, rolled a great stone to the mouth of the tomb, and clapping on their own seals set a guard to watch him. HE DESCENDED INTO HELL. That is, he went down into the lower-most parts of i Eph 4. 5. the earth, and for the space of three days remained in the grave amongst the dead: Or, as some expound it, he suffered the pains of Hell and the wrath of God due to our sins, and underwent the curse of the law and terrors of conscience, to which we were liable. Others take the words, as they sound, of the place: that he did coveigh himself into the regions of darkness, and discovered to the devils, and to the wicked spirits the glory of his presence, and routing the powers of Hell, leading captivity captive, and trampling Satan that old serpent the enemy of mankind under his victorious feet according to the first Prophecy of Christ, k Gen. 9 15. The seed of the woman shall bruise the serpent's head. And in this sense, this article is the beginning of Christ's exaltation. The other degrees are his Resurrection, his Ascension, his Sitting at the right hand of God the Father, and his Coming to judgement. THE THIRD DAY. After that he had lain three days in the grave, as jonas, who was l Matth. 12. 39, 40. the type of the Son of Man, continued three days in the whale's belly; It being observed that on the fourth day the body begins to corrupt, which was not to happen to Christ, David thus speaking concerning him: m Act. 11. 27. My flesh shall rest in hope, because thou wilt not leave my soul in Hell, neither wilt thou suffer thy holy one to see corruption. Wherefore early in the morning on the third day, which was for that reason appointed the Christian Sabbath, HE ROSE AGAIN. Partly raising himself by his own virtue and divine power, as himself saith, n joh. 10. 17. I lay down my life that I may take it up again, I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again; Partly being raised by God the Father, who when his justice was fully satisfied, released Christ out of the prison of the grave, and to that purpose sent his Angels to roll away the stone, death having now no more dominion over him, who having finished the work of our redemption, rose again for our justification. FROM THE DEAD. He returned to life, appeared to his Disciples and others several times, showed the wounds which he had received on the Cross, and o joh. 20. 27. made Thomas who was hard of belief to feel his side, that he might know it was a true body; And having for forty days together conversed upon earth, and given orders to the Apostles, how they should go into all the world and preach the Gospel and plant churches, promising them the assistance of the spirit, he took his leave of them in this manner, as followeth. HE ASCENDED. In the sight of his Apostles from the top of mount Olivet, where he had been formerly used to spend much of his time in holy retirements and spiritual exercises, he lifted up himself from the ground, and so mounting upward through the air was received by a cloud, and to the wonder of them all carried aloft out of sight, p Act. 1. 11. two Angels telling them, as they stood gazing, that as they had seen him go away, so he should come again. INTO HEAVEN. The seat of the blessed, where God sits on his Throne, attended by millions of Angels far above the sphere of the stars & the sky, to wit, the highest heaven: For having dispatched the business, for which he came down on earth, he returned to the Father by whom he had been sent, to intercede with him in our behalf, and make out to us thence the benefit of all those things, which he had done and suffered for us here; And having conquered sin and death, and broken the power of Hell, what remains, but that he should as in triumph ride upon the wings of the wind, ascend to Heaven as the prize of his glorious conquest? AND SITTETH. To note that he hath fully accomplished the work of our Salvation, he is said at last to sit down, that he may as it were rest from his labours: For the servant stands or goes whilst he is employed, and sits not down till his work be done: Now Christ put on the form of a servant, and came (as q Matth 20. 28. he saith of himself) to wait, not to be waited on. That he sits also, is a token of that authority which the Father hath given him, having delivered unto him all power both in heaven and in earth, and put all things under his feet. So God sits in Heaven to order all things at his pleasure. Again to sit sometimes signifies stay; he sits there not to return before the end of the world. Lastly by this word is expressed the blessed and glorious condition of the Saints in the life to come, who shall r Matth. 8. 11. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 discumbent. sit down with Abraham, Isaac, and jacob in the Kingdom of Heaven; and therefore to show the greatness of the dignity, to which Christ according to his humane nature is advanced, is added; At the right hand of God the Father Almighty. The right hand usually expresseth strength and honour; power and glory: besides s Gal 11. 9 to give the right hand is a sign of fellowship, and friendship; wherefore God calls him the man my fellow: Now to speak properly God hath no right hand or left, nor any bodily parts; but that he may apply himself to our capacities, he doth use to speak of himself after the manner of men. Becuse earthly Princes are wont to place those at their right hand, whom they favour, and would show a particular honour; as t Kin. 11. 19 Solomon entertained his mother. The meaning is, that God hath raised him to the highest pitch of honour, set him above Angels, principalities, and powers, and hath committed to his trust the Government of the world. FROM THENCE. To wit out of Heaven, whither he ascended, and where he now is, Christ God & Man, at the last day in the end of the world, riding upon the clouds, shall show himself, and HE SHALL COME. Attended with innumerable Angels and Saints, with the voice of a Trumpet, in a glorious manner to the joy of his servants, and the terror of his enemies. TO JUDGE. For all mankind shall be gathered together from the four quarters of the earth, and v Rom. 14. 10. we must all appear before the judgment-seat of Christ, to give an account of our works. Then shall the books be opened, and every man's conscience shall witness against him, and that which hath been done in secret shall be made known, and the thoughts of the heart shall be discovered: Then righteous sentence shall proceed from the judge's mouth according to the Law and the Gospel: Then shall be put a difference betwixt the good and bad, the righteous and the wicked; when God shall reward his servants with a Crown of Glory, and destroy his enemies with an everlasting destruction & endless torments. There is a twofold coming of Christ, Christ came first to be judged, the second time he will come to judge THE QUICK. Those who shall then be found alive, who u 1 Cor. 15. 52. shall be suddenly changed, in the twinkling of an eye, and without death shall pass from death to life. AND THE DEAD. For the dead shall rise again, as many as from the beginning of the world, throughout all ages have lived upon the face of the earth, and though they have been mouldered into dust, or torn by wild beasts, or buried in the waves of the Sea; yet they shall take up the very same bodies again, to which the soul may again be united; God's power bringing this about, and his justice so requiring it; that every man may in his body reap the fruit of those things, which he hath done in the body. I BELIEV. With the same Faith, by which I believ the Father and the Son, I believ also in the third Person of the holy and blessed Trinity: Being verily persuaded, that he is true God, and the power of the most High; depending upon his assistance, and finding by experience that whatsoever good I either do or have, comes all from him. IN THE SPIRIT. He is therefore called Ghost or Spirit w à Spirando. because he partly proceeds from the Father and the Son, by way of breathing; partly because he breathes into us good thoughts and holy desires; wherefore it is added HOLY. Seeing that he is not only Holy in himself, with such holiness as far exceeds all other blessed Spirits, both Angels, & Saints, but also makes us holy by an effectual working of grace in our hearts. He it is that applies the benefits of Christ's death unto us, and makes us partakers of the salvation, which he hath purchased for us by his blood. The holy Prophets and Apostles were the penmen of the Holy Ghost, who wrote as they were inspired by him. He gathers the Church by the Preaching of the word, having furnished the Apostles with the gifts of tongues, & provided a ministry and other holy ordinances for the propagation of the Gospel, filling up the number of the elect, and bringing souls to life. THE CHURCH. The company of believers, whom God hath ordained to life, before the foundation of the world was laid; & whom he hath called out of a state of sin, to the profession of Faith in Christ, and a holy conversation, whom he also doth rule by his Word and Spirit. HOLY. Gathered, and guided by the Holy Ghost, distinguished from the rest of the world by holy appointments, adorning their profession with holy works. CATHOLIC, or Universal in respect of time, place, and persons; being to last through all ages of the world, spread abroad over all quarters of the earth, & consisting of men of all ranks and conditions; God having shut the gate of his Kingdom to none, but such as wilfully refuse to enter. Now the Holy Ghost bestows upon the Church, which he gathers by the word, and sanctifies by grace, these Blessings which follow. THE COMMUNION OF SAINTS. Whereby the Saints, who are the faithful ones, the chosen, and the children of light, are united to Christ as their head, and amongst themselves as members of the same body, the Church, drawing virtue & life and efficacy from Christ, and performing to one another all offices of Charity, as being knit together with a spirit of love, and bond of peace. THE FORGIVENESS OF SINS. Which the spirit on our unfeigned repentance assures us of by applying the merit of Christ, and sprinkling our consciences from dead works with his blood, which he poured forth, to be a price of souls; neither doth he only seal to our hearts a pardon of former offences, showing us the favour of God reconciled in his Son; but doth withal give us power to resist sin for the time to come, cleansing us from every defilement of the flesh and spirit, subduing our lusts, changing our wills, and renewing our natures according to righteousness. THE RESURRECTION OF THE BODY. For in the last day when Christ shall come to judgement, the trump shall sound, and the dead shall arise with the very same bodies that they had before, and every one shall receive according to his works: For as much as the wicked shall be thrown into Hell, there to be tormented with the Devil, with the worm which never dies, and the fire which is never quenched. But the good shall enter into LIFE EVERLASTING. Where they shall rest from their labours, and enjoy God for ever, living in abundance of joys and pleasures, x 1. Cor. 11. 9 which neither eye hath seen, nor ear hath heard, nor can the heart of man conceiv. And all these things I believ not only with an Historical Faith, but appropriate unto myself, being fully persuaded, that God made me by his power, preserves me by his goodness, and provides for me both in soul and body by his infinite wisdom. And that the Son of God, whatsoever he hath done or suffered, he performed and underwent for my sake, that I through him might live: And that the Spirit of God dwelleth in me, working in me Faith & Repentance: that I am a true member of the Church, that my sins are forgiven me, that I shall rise again, and see my Redeemer with these eyes, who shall out of his free bounty reward me, his unworthiest servant, with the Glory which shall have no end. FINIS. THE EXPLANATION OF THE TEN COMMANDMENTS. The Ten Commandments. Exodus xx. GOD spoke all these words, saying. I am the Lord thy God, which have brought thee out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage. I. Thou shalt have no other gods before me. II. Thou shalt not make unto thee any graven image; or any likeness of any thing that is in heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or that is in the water under the earth. Thou shalt not bow down thyself to them, nor serve them: For I the Lord thy God am a jealous God, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children, unto the third and fourth generation of them that hate me: And showing mercy unto thousands of them that love me, and keep my Commandments. III. Thou shalt not take the Name of the Lord thy God in vain. For the Lord will not hold him guiltless that taketh his Name in vain. IV. Remember the Sabbath day to keep it holy. Six days shalt thou labour and do all thy work. But the seventh day is the Sabbath of the Lord thy God: In it thou shalt not do any work, thou nor thy son, nor thy daughter, thy man servant, nor thy maid servant, nor thy cattle, nor thy stranger, that is within thy gates. For in six days the Lord made heaven and earth, the sea, and all that in them is, and rested the seventh day: Therefore the Lord blessed the Sabbath day, and hallowed it. V. Honour thy father & thy mother; that thy days may be long upon the land, which the Lord thy God giveth thee. VI Thou shalt not kill. VII. Thou shalt not commit adultery. VIII. Thou shalt not steal. IX. Thou shalt not bear false witness against thy neighbour. X. Thou shalt not covet thy neighbour's house; thou shalt not covet thy neighbour's wife, nor his man servant, nor his maid-servant, nor his ox, nor his ass, nor any thing that is thy neighbours. THE TEN COMMANDMENTS. GOD, when he had erected the stately frame of the World, and furnished the scene of nature with various kinds of creatures, prescribed an order & course, in which every thing should move; for his command doth as well determine the actings of his creatures, as it did produce their beings: Thus the great wheel of nature keeps an orderly and constant course; and, as in a watch or some other curious piece of workmanship, every small parcel of his work observes the rule of its motion, and is by that principle, the workman's hand put into it, guided to those ends for which it was made. And this is the Law of Creation, by which all creatures pay an obedience to their Creator; for as they depend upon his power to Be, so 'twas fit they should be directed by his wisdom to Act. This is indeed the Law of Nature, which God, as supreme Sovereign and absolute Lord, and proprietour of all things, has the sole right of imposing. By this the heavenly bodies dispense their influences, and steer their motions, which when excentrical are not irregular. The Sun knows his place of rising and setting, and it must be miracle that either stops him in his wont road, or puts him back. The Moon is constant to her changes, and all the stars fixed to their stations, nor do the wand'ring stars rove out of those bounds which God hath set them. The very inconstancy of weather and vicissitude of seasons is ordered by this Law, and when any thing in the Elements happens extraordinary, as that fire should refuse to burn, water deny to drown, etc. 'tis because a more particular warrant hath superseded the general commission, which was signed at first; for the law giver has power to alter his own laws, & make what exceptions he please: which was the ground of Abraham's Faith, who though by the general precept forbidden to kill any one, yet upon special command thought himself obliged to sacrifice his own and only Son. To this Law are subject the Sea also, ebbing and flowing, from & towards the shore; God having appointed it its bounds, beyond which it may not go; and the Earth with all plants and fruits which grow on the surface of it, and stones and minerals in the bowels of it, according to the rules of each kind. Of this Law a paricular branch is that, which we call natural instinct; whereby living creatures, which are endued with sense and motion and a faculty of propagating their like, to wit, Birds, Beasts, Fishes and creeping things are regulated in the managery of their care and converse. Hence springs that tender affection, which all dams have for their young ones, the conjugal fidelity of pairs, the rules of order and government amongst societies, such as Sheep, Bees, etc. After this manner it pleased the faithful Creator to provide a Law for the well-being of his creatures; without which the universe would have been still a mere Tohu and Bohu, void and without form. This is that ligament, which binds the jarring Elements in a league of amity, and sets every thing a work, quietly to its own ends, so as to preserve the whole; and were it not for this, all things would run into confusion. But man being a creature of a more excellent make, and having the imprese of divinity stamped upon him, (being made in the likeness of God,) was not to be cooped up within the same measures as his fellow-creatures, and be guided to his duty by blind instincts and a reason without him; but had a greater latitude as of knowledge so of liberty allowed him; for it was thought fit, that he, who was to have dominion over the rest, and to act Sovereign among other creatures, should be entrusted with the government of himself. Wherefore he had an understanding & a will given him, whereby he might see and choose his rule, and might determine himself to a generous obedience. And these faculties of his were (as all things else were that God made) at first very good; his understanding right and wise, his will holy and just, of perfect sufficience to lead him to the right, and of as perfect an indifference to leave him to the wrong; besides, his affections pure and free from all disorder. Now that man might not pride himself in the reflection upon his own excellencies, and that God might from this his Vicegerent and Prince of the Creation have some small acknowledgement of subjection, it pleased him to make a command of trial in a slight matter indeed (the eating of an Apple) but loaded with a grievous threat, In the day that thou eatest thereof, thou shalt die the death: The breach of so easy an injunction upon so solemn a denunciation aggravating the ingratitude and the contempt of the offender. And see, how hard it was to persist in good, even for him who before never knew evil? How slippery a State Innocence, when there is but the least temptation to debauch it? How frail a thing the best of men, if he be left to himself? A toy tempts Adam from his obedience and his happiness together, and from Eve's hand, which administered the sin, he took his death too. Then were forfeited all the glorious privileges of his Creation; then were defaced all the resemblances of divine perfections; then was his soul as well as body left naked of all graces and virtues, & his original righteousness turned into original sin; then were his days cut short by bringing a mortality upon himself and his posterity, so that he, not Cain, was the first murderer; then was lost even that awe & authority, which he had over the other creatures; who after man turned rebel withdrew their allegiance too; And 'tis not unlikely that by the sin of man the affections of the very brutes have been debauched from their natural temper; Hence possibly those enmityes and antipathies, which some kinds of creatures have to others, that before in the golden age of innocence lived at peace; hence those quarrels & animosities, which those of the same kind exercise; & hence perhaps those (I may say) vicious miscarriages and enormous misdemeanours of several indiviudal creatures, those especially which are man's domestics, & have a more familiar acquaintance with his manners; as dogs, swine, etc. which sure, had man continued innocent, would have kept to rules of meekness, modesty, and such other virtues, as was fit for the goodness of the supreme Lawgiver to prescribe for the preservation of peace and good order amongst his creatures. Thus hath the Fall of Man put whole nature into disorder, spoiled the natural principles of honesty and justice, and by abusing the Liberty of doing good or evil, brought us all into a sad necessity of doing nothing else but evil; that, whereas he had only a possibility of sinning, 'tis impossible for us not to sin. Wherefore when God saw that those notions and inclinations, which he had implanted, were by the fall so battered and marred, that they could be no longer useful for those great purposes of his own service & man's felicity; & that man had now darkened his understanding, depraved his will, and corrupted his affections, & made himself in all his faculties and members a vassal of sin; he was graciously pleased out of the rubbish of those endowments & that law which he had written in man's heart, to collect, and set down in writing, a Law, by which man might be instructed to his duty; that humanity might not wholly degenerate into beast, and withal to show that God hath not lost his right to command, though man have lost his ability to obey. 'Tis true, that all the time before the flood, and some good while after, mankind was governed by an unwritten Law, by inbred notions of right and wrong, and traditions handed to them by the Patriarches from the fathers to the children; such as was the worship of God by offering sacrifice and first fruits, by calling upon his name, and keeping the Sabbath, & those precepts which were given to Noah and his three sons: and thus some remnants of the primitive integrity were always visible in the customs and usages of the most savage people, that had no positive law to walk by; whence arose that which we call the Law of Nations, all nations agreeing in some common principles at least of public justice, and God instructing them by his Sun and his rain, though he did not teach them by his word and messengers. Yet when the number of men was multiplied into so many nations, (which began to difference themselves by manners & religions as much as by languages and countries,) and their lives shortened so, that tradition could not be conveyed so purely to posterity as formerly; it pleased God to choose to himself a peculiar people among all the nations of the Earth, even the family of his friend Abraham, to whom he might make more particular discoveries of his will; and having four hundred years' affliction in Egypt, and a miraculous delivery thence, prepared the children of Israel for the receiving of his Law, he did in open audience from the top of mount Sinai with his own Mouth pronounce aloud, and afterwards with his own Hand fairly engrave on two Tables of stone the Ten Commandments; which though they be in a special sense termed the Law of God, yet the whole Scripture may be and is so styled often, in as much as the History of the Bible doth but serve to represent examples of obedience or disobedience to this Law, and the Prophetical writings are but explications and comments upon it, and the Psalms and other sacred pieces are but Meditations and pious descants. This is that we call the Moral Law, the rule of manners and the guide of life, which teaches every man how he is to behave himself both towards God and towards man, whether as he is considered barely in his person or in his relation. There is mention made also of other Laws of Gods making which were peculiar only to the jews: the Ceremonial Law which sets down rules for sacred persons, places, times, assemblies, vests, utensils, sacrifices, and other rites; and for the ordering of all Ecclesiastical affairs: and the judicial Law, which provides for the securing of propriety and peace, for the creation of Magistrates and administration of justice, and all politic concerns. Now though these were indeed so proper to the lewish State and Church, that no other Nation is strictly obliged to their observance; & although the Levitical Priesthood is ceased, and the Ceremonies, being but types and shadows of Christ which was to come, were at the rising of that Sun of righteousness made void and useless to the jews & dangerous to Christians, since the use of them would tacitly imply a denial of our Lord's coming in the flesh, and so indeed prove down right Antichristian, he being a 11. joh. 7. the Antichrist, which denies that: yet I know not why Statesmen should not think themselves obliged to respect the lawgiver's wisdom and the equity of the thing, though the law itself doth not oblige; as in the case of thiefs, a fourfold restitution would look like a more proportionable punishment then present death, no goods amounting to the value of life, and a Bridewell or Plantation be a sorer course to chastise the malefactor for his mischievous actions, & surer to recover him from his wicked habits, than the goal and gallows. Again God's Law hath given adultery its due, punishing it with death, the honour of the sufferer being irreparable; whereas man's law commonly is so remissly either made or executed, that all the satisfaction the injured person must expect is from his own patience, fearing least by a challenge of justice, he make himself but the object of a public reproach. Nor do I see, why the use of any innocent Ceremony in gesture or vesture, etc. should now be deemed unlawful upon this ground, because the Levites perhaps used one not much unlike; or why the Governors of the Christian Church may not in things indifferent order the same observances, as were used in the jewish, and yet not lie under the scandal of judaism: as to instance, shall a white vest now be less becoming, because the Levites wore linen? surely if this argument hold, blacks will be much more misbecoming the holy order, as being the colour by which the Idolatrous Priests b Called thence 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Kemarim, i e, Atrati. Zeph 1. 4. were distinguished. But 'tis not perhaps the thing so much discontents, as the imposition. They would be left at liberty, and have their obedience as indifferent, as the Ceremony. 'Tis too manifest, what this means; they can brook no superiors; they would have no authority over their heads; for 'tis confessed on all hands, that God cannot be served without form and Ceremony, of time, of place, of persons, and that a distinctive govenment, whereby we may know him that officiates from the rest of the company, is expedient. Now set pride and faction aside, and 'tis easy for any indifferent man to judge, whether it be fitter to obey the grave and deliberate constitutions of the Fathers & Governors of the Church, or be led by the sudden and mutable fancy and humour of every parochial Teacher, especially such as these late times have afforded us many, whose forms it has been unsafe to say Amen to, and whose postures and garbs have rather moved the laughter of the vulgar, and the pity of serious auditors, than their devotion. Whose discretion will it be best to trust to? And if there be such a thing as Church-Government, where will it lie, if not in determining things of this nature? Besides such straggling Pastors do not consider, what a sorry example they set to their flocks; for how can they expect that obedience, which themselves refuse to pay? or how can they hope to exercise a Pastoral authority over their hearers (amongst whom some peradventure are men of as large abilities and as great learning & piety as themselves) when they themselves affront the Episcopal authority which is over them? But they resolve to be directed wholly by Scripture, and will do nothing without an express Text. I wish they would but take notice, what advantage they reach out to all schismatics, and fanatics, and how easy 'tis to use their arguments for the overthrow of all decency and order, contrary to the Apostle's rule, c 1. Cor. 14. 40. let every thing be done decently and in order. Where's Scripture, say they, for surplice, for cross, for kneeling? Has not the schismatic improved this objection to them unanswerably? Show me Scripture for gown, for black cloak, for caps, for pulpit, for bells, for churches, for Minister's set maintenance, for any thing, for every thing. Thus we see, if this hold, nothing will stand. In short, some habit, some place, some posture, etc. is necessary to the worship of God; but what particular habit or form or posture is fittest to be used, that which the wisdom of the Church prescribes, or that which the discretion of each private Pastor shall make choice of, I shall leave to the sober Reader to judge. Again 'tis not the Ceremony so much troubles some, as the significancy of it; as though any thing could be appointed, which an ordinary wit will not make significant. Our Saviour himself (if learned men mistake not) was not so scrupulous, who hath transcribed into Christian practice several usages of the jewish Church, even to the very expression, as in the Lord's Prayer, and the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper, several passages whereof are quoted out of the jewish Liturgies and Rituals. To conclude, it concerns us to be very wary of changing old well-laid customs, though they be but superstructures, for fear of shaking the foundations: and let some men please themselves (as they list) in their spiritual liberty (as they call it) or itch (as d 11. Tim. 4. 4. the Apostle calls it) woeful experience has taught us, that the Church is in great danger, where she is left to the conduct of particular ministers. Not to say, that discontents and quarrels about the circumstances of religion, as they give vent to schisms and separations in Church; so they often lead the dance to seditions and rebellions in State; for Schism and Rebellion likely go hand in hand, and men would be as willing to have their civil liberty as their spiritual; and it may be observed, that those pens, which have travelled most against Prelatical tyranny (as they term it) have been easily encouraged to go on, and strike at civil power, as liking no Monarchy whether in Chair or Throne. Wherefore let us study peace, and if we cannot show ourselves good Christians by our self-denial, by submitting our discretion and our abilities to the rules of the Church and the wisdom of our superiors; yet let us out of love to our Country act the part of good Subjects, and not with unreasonable discontents and unseasonable quarrels endanger the imbroiling of three Nations in the miseries of a civil war; having found by trial, that Discontent improves to faction, and Faction blows the Trumpet to Rebellion. The Law according to the importance of the Hebrew e 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in Hiph. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 docuit. word signifies doctrine and instruction, teaching us how to order our lives; and as the Greek f 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 t●ibuo; quòd jus suum ●uiqu● tribuat. word notes, to give unto every one his due; unto God the things which are God's, and unto men the respects and offices which belong to men; And it is attended with promises and threatenings. The promises hold forth rewards to the obedient, the favour of God and a prosperous condition, even as to outward things in this world, and everlasting life and happiness in the world to come. The threatenings denounce the severity of God's judgements on the breakers of the law here, and an everlasting death in never dying torments hereafter. The Law is a hedge to keep us in within the bounds of duty, but it was itself to be fenced and secured with the proposal of rewards and punishments, that, if the love of virtue alone could not win us, the advantages of holiness might allure us, and, if the deformities of sin in its own ugly shape could not affright us, we might be startled with the dreadful apprehension of those plagues and evils, which it brings along with it. Now the Nature of God's Law is much different from the laws and institutions of men. God's Law is perfect, and has provided for every condition of men and for all their actions; here's no rule wanting which is necessary, nothing redundant or over much; but the ordinances of men are but poor scantlings & consequences drawn out of a shallow reason, and enlarged by further experience, new occasions still requiring new supplements. God's Law is pure & holy, proceeding from a Holy God, & making those holy, that place their studies and endeavours in the exercising of it: but those laws, which are derived from the puddle of humane reason, carry along with them the mixture of corruption, passion and interest & ignorance, and many times downright wickedness and injustice being interwoven in the very frame and constitution of them. And above all, where as the politic devices of men can only restrain the outward man, and lay traps for words and deeds, but cannot ensnare the freedom of thinking; God being Lord of the Conscience, his statutes reach conscience, captivate the mind, and apprehend each guilty thought: and whereas here on earth plots and conspiracies against authority are made out only by what has been done or said, God's supremacy will arraign those that rise up against him by the evidence and verdict of their own conscience. This Law being so perfect, so pure, and so holy, 'tis impossible for us, who are altogether evil, by our own natural strength to accomplish; for we are not able of ourselves so much as to think a good thought; so that, if we stand to the tenor of the Covenant of works, whereby we are obliged to a punctual and exact obedience to the Law, in all its parts, in all our thoughts words and deeds, and God should b● stric● to observe what is done amiss, and should in judgement proceed against us accordingly, no flesh would be justified in his ●ight: for we have all sinned, and come short of the glory of God; short of it both as the end and as the reward of our actions: we have neither lived up to it, nor can we upon our own account be made partakers of it; Wherefore that all mankind might not faint under this intolerable yoke, and sink under the unsupportable burden of this Law, God was pleased out of his love to mankind to strike a New Covenant with us in the Blood of his Son, who has made the yoke easy and the burden light, by bearing it for us. The terms of the first Covenant are, g Luke 10. 28. D● this and live; of the second, g Acts 16. 31. Believe and thou shalt be saved. The Covenant of Works requires an exactness, the Covenant of Grace looks for the sincerity of obedience. Nor doth this Law of Faith void and null the Moral Law, but the terrors of the Law drive us to embrace Gospel-terms; for which reason the h Gal. 3. 24. Law is called the Schoolmaster to Christ For when a sinner is convinced, how unable he is of himself to fulfil the demands of the Law, and how his multiplied transgressions render him liable to the curse of the Law and the fierce wrath of God, he in the apprehension of his own guilt and insufficience flies to the Mediator (as to a city of refuge) who hath fulfilled the Law for us, and hath undergon the wrath of an offended God and the curse of a righteous Law, that he might be able to save those to the uttermost, that should put their trust in him. Neither doth the Law of works cease to be of use to those, that are in Christ, and are now under the Covenant of Grace; for Obedience as well as Faith is required, as a condition of the new Covenant; for it must be a Faith acted or acting by love, and, though the person is justified by faith, yet that faith must be evidenced by good works: k Gal. 5. 6. ● james k. 1●. Show me, saith the Apostle, thy faith by thy works. The Moral Law than remains still in force, as a rule of this obedience: as it shows our misery and drives us to Christ, so it regulates our gratitude, when we are in Christ. The Law is a glass to present us with a sight of our sin, by comparing our past actions with the rule; and a lantern too to direct us in the path of our duty, by comparing our future actions with the same rule. In the one respect we see at what distance we have lived from the rule, and repent; in the other respect we see how to keep close to it, and amend our lives. The Law indeed has lost its damning power as to the righteous, but 'tis still in force to direct; & though they are acquitted from the curse by the merit of our Saviour's death, they are not discharged from the duty, as being risen again with him to a newness of life, and created in him to good works. Nay, their obligations are heightened, and they are to have greater respect to the Law, that they may proportion the measures of their gratitude to the merits of their Redeemer: for they, who have had much forgiven, must love much, and love is the fulfilling of the Law. Christ having bought us with a price, we are no longer our own to fulfil the lusts of the flesh, but we are his; and we shall be known to be his by loving one another, and keeping his commands. And 'tis plain, that he meant not to release us from the Law, but rather to improve and enhance the observation of it; and in those things, wherein the ties of the Law were slackened, either by God's indulgence, or false glosses and corrupt customs of men, to fill it up, and clear it from mistakes, and lay greater weight on its precepts; as appears by his Sermon on the mount, wherein he goes over most of the particulars. And what the Apostle says before conversion, l Rom. 7. 7. If it had not bi● for the Law, I had not known sin; so we may say after conversion. Were it not for the Law, we should not know our duty. The Law is divided into ten Commandments, whence 'tis called the Decalogue or ten Words, which were written upon two Tables, four on one Table, and six on the other. 'Tis not amiss to take notice of the division: the Law is a rule of practice, and the hand the great instrument of action, a Table for each hand, and for every finger a Commandment. A brief survey of the method & scheme, by which the commands are distinguished, we may take thus. The first Table sets down the duties we owe to God, the second Table contains our duties to Man, our neighbours and ourselves. All is but Love, but with difference of degrees; for our love to our neighbour must be subordinate and inferior to our love to God; so our Saviour hath resolved the sum of all; m Matt. 22. 37. Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, with all thy mind, with all thy soul, and with all thy strength. to as high a degree, as possibly we can; for it may be supposed that these several words signify but the same thing, that is, the highest intention of love. It would be too Critical perhaps to make a different sense of each word, that the heart should signify the will, the mind note the understanding, the soul stand for the affections, and strength imply our bodily service. It means sure the whole man. And thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself. And that one would think should be very well, but this Law teacheth us how to love ourselves too. There's scarce any one doth that so well as he should do. Our neighbour cannot quarrel us, if we love him as ourselves; but God will not be content with that; he will be loved above every thing, above self itself. We must love every thing else for God's sake, and God for his own. The duties to God take up the first place, and those being discharged will à priori effect the second table duties. He that goes through the first table, will never boggle at the second. Religion and Knavery are inconsistent. Can he be holy that's unjust? fear God that honours not his King? doth he conscientiously fear an Oath, who makes no conscience of a Lie? a zealous professor and a cheat? a strict Sabbath keeper and an Usurper, a Rebel? scrupulous of idolatry, and yet delight in adultery, and indulge himself in schism, envy, and other works of the flesh? If these things may be reconciled, than Saint and Devil, Christ and Belial, heaven and hell may be joined together. Such men's religion is vain. The duties to man follow in the second place, and will à posteriori demonstrate the first table duties, and he that's thorough paced here gives a fair evidence, that either he has made or means to make his progress further. An honest man and yet an Atheist? a charitable person and idolatrous? a loyal subject, a good neighbour, and yet a swearer, a Sabbath-breaker? the Morality of such men is as counterfeit, as the other's Religion was: for how can he be faithful to his Prince, who is false to his God? or exercise charity aright towards men, who fear's not God's displeasure? We must not part the two tables, but take them together, spiritualise our morality, and civilize our religion. Our love to God is seen in the worship we give him; now the worship of God is either internal, of the inward man; and that is prescribed in the fi●st command: or external, and that is shown forth in our gestures, directed by the second, in our words and speeches, which are the subject of the third; and in our work all the week and our rest on the Sabbath, which is the business of the fourth commandment. Our love to our neighbour is considered either relatively to our superiors, etc. in the fifth; or absolutely to all men what so ever, in the rest; and that either externally in his body, as to hurt, in the sixth; as to defilement, in the seaventh command; in his goods, in the eighth; and in his good name in the ninth; or internally, which strikes at the root of all, evil concupiscence, in the tenth commandment. So that the first and last do more particularly restrain the inward man, the rest do more immediately order the outward man; yet so as that the thoughts and desires also are reduced to the same heads. Having taken this brief survey, before we proceed to the commandments in particular, 'tis necessary to take along with us three or four general rules, according to which they are all to be understood. One is, that every Affirmative precept includes a Negative, and on the other side where any sin is forbidden, there the contrary virtue is enjoined: thus the Commandments are like the flocks of Engedi, every one bears twins. The Commandments are most of them negative, there being but two, the fourth and fifth, that are set down affirmatively; yet he that has but a negative religion, will hardly be acquitted by the Law. 'Tis not enough not to kill thy neighbour, not to steal from him; but thy charity must be employed in helping him, when he is in danger and in want: nor will it serve turn, that we do not worship images, nor take God's name in vain; but we are bound to worship God, and to make a reverend use of his name. Another is, that where any duty is commanded or any sin forbidden, there the several kinds, degrees, causes, occasions, signs, circumstances, & whatsoever else belongs to that duty or that sin, are together with it commanded or forbidden; as murder includes in it hatred, quarrel, and all manner of hurt. The expression indeed is scant, but very comprehensive and of large sense. The third is, (which was partly touched at before) that in every command not only gross acts, but together with our deeds, our words, and above all our thoughts are considered; it being God's prerogative to be a searcher of hearts, and God of all parts requiring the heart, and having erected there his judicatory, even our own conscience: and this was that great advantage of God's Law beyond all humane laws, that it order the thoughts, and divides betwixt the joints and the marrow. 'Tis not sufficient then to have a demure outside like the Pharisees cups and platters, but we must keep a clean inside: for God requires truth in the inward parts. And this is indeed the perfection, that Evangelical obedience aims at, sincerity, & the right ordering of our thoughts & desires is the highest pitch of Christianity, as giving God the great glory of his omniscience. A fourth may be this, that all Virtue consisting in a mean hath two extremes, on each side one, a vicious excess and a vicious defect, which both fall under the prohibition, though but one perhaps be named. The Atheist which owns no God at all, is as much a transgressor of the first precept, as the Polytheist, who has a multitude to pay his devotions to. Fondness may be as great an error in love, as too much severity. Prodigality transgresses the bounds of a liberal disposition, as covetousness comes short; when we are bid not covet that which belongs to another, it is not meant we should fling away what's our own. Wherefore we must keep a middle road, take heed of being righteous too much or too little, we must neither turn to the right hand nor to the left. The fifth and last rule is this; That the same Grace or Sin, the same good or bad act may in several respects, be reduced to several commandments; as the eating of the forbidden fruit, and the disobedience of Lot's wife, etc. Indeed the whole circle & round of virtues, is like a gold-chain, where if you break off one link, you spoil the whole chain; whence may have proceeded that note of St. james, That n jam. 2. 10. he who breaks one Commandment, is guilty of all; not so much because the Authority of the Lawgiver is the same in the several commands, as by reason of that mutual coherence and dependence, which the Commandments have with one another. Most sins, are made up of a complication, and are like a bed of snakes enfolded together. To this head may be brought those sins which are of a transcendent nature, and are scarcely to be lodged properly and directly in any one precept, but seem rather to include the violation of them all: such as are Pride, Hypocrisy, Ignorance, malice, profaneness, sloth, with their opposite virtues, meekness, sincerity, discretion, charity, zeal and diligence, etc. And some other Beldame sins, which are the womb and outlet of other sins; as presumption, despair, drunkenness and covetousness, which the Apostle hath branded as o 1. Tim. 6 10. the root of all evil: and their contraries, Faith, Hope, Temperance, contentedness, etc. which all seem to be accumulated habits, and so resolve themselves into many, if not most parts of the Law. Taking these rules along with us, we shall with the more ease take the just measures of each command in its full latitude; for God's p P●alm. 119. 96. Commandments, as the Psalmist has observed, are exceeding broad: Much matter delivered in few words; for so it became the Majesty of the Lawgiver to use plainness and brevity, to help the understanding and ease the memory of the hearers, and he that would to purpose understand the Law of the Lord, must meditate in it day and night, that so he may time his duties aright, and be like the tree planted by the river side, which bringeth forth its fruit in due season, and thus whatsoever he does shall prosper. GOD SPOKE. Three months after the children of Israel's departure out of Egypt, when they had pitched their Tents in the wilderness of Sinai, when they had fresh in memory that wonderful deliverance, which God wrought for them, in their passage over the red-Sea, from Pharaoh and his host, besides those many dreadful miracles which he had shown in Egypt, God mindful of the Covenant which he had made with Abraham and his seed, the Israelites being now in a convenient place, in a desert retired from the observation as well as the invasion of their enemies, strikes a league with them, that, if they will obey his voice and keep his Covenant, he will own them for his peculiar people, and upon their acceptance of these terms, after two days solemn preparation, the Divine Majesty came down, with Thunders and Lightnings and thick Clouds, and seated himself upon the top of the Mount Sinai in the midst of fire and smoke, with the noise of Trumpet, that the Mountain and the Camp both shaken with fear, and whether by the ministry of an Angel, or rather by some other more immediate way, with audible voice, face to face pronounced the tenor and conditions of the Covenant, comprehended in the words of the Law. ALL THESE WORDS. Christ the second Person is called the Word, but he is the word begotten, as the Word is the immediate and essential issue of the Mind. The whole Scripture too is God's Word, that is, was by God inspired into the holy penmen, they writing according to the dictates of the Spirit: whence that form of speech especially among the Prophets. Thus saith the Lord, and The Word of the Lord came unto me. But these Words God himself uttered, which therefore call for the more heedful attention, and awful regard. If the Lion roars shall not the beasts of the forest tremble; every word should sound in our ears like a clap of Thunder, & cause an Earthquake in our bowels; for the Highest hath uttered his voice, even a mighty voice. All these words too; which requires an universal obedience. We are not to pick and choose, but receive them all with a like readiness of Faith, as the clear manifestations of God's will. God at the first creation for every days work spoke, and it was done: Oh! that he would so speak to our hearts, that his Spirit may accompany his Word, and help us to do, what he commands us to do. O Lord, give us strength to perform thy Commands, and then command what thou wilt. SAYING. The Rabbins have a tradition or fiction, that God pronounced the Law twice over; the first time with that haste, as if the whole Law had been but one word; but at the second going over, leisurely and distinctly. Whereupon they say, that in this portion of Scripture the accents are upon every word doubled, to denote that double delivery, the one a note of speed, the other of stop and pause. This (I suppose) they gather from the two words here used, as if he spoke them in haste, and said them at leisure; or whether they thought it fit the Law should be delivered twice by word of mouth, as well as twice written upon tables. Whether this were so or no, matters not much; only it should be our prayer and endeavour, that they might be spoken over twice to us, to the ear first, and then to the heart, to the inward man as well as to the outward; & though we have not the advantages of those terrors and dreadful circumstances, wherewith the Law was at first delivered, to prepare us with a prostrate humility and a devout reverence, yet let us imagine that we hear the trumpet sound to judgement, and awaken our attention; and let us think we see the flames of Hell, & those everlasting burnings, whither the transgressors of this Law must be dispatched, and possess our souls with fear, and hearken what the Lord will say to his servants. The Preface. Had God surprised them with this terrible appearance, they might have been swallowed up in their fears, and been lost in those dazzling amazements; therefore he gave them two day's time to prepare themselves; & here before he makes known to them his Law, he acquaints them with the Lawgiver; and that he might put their affections into a suitable temper for so solemn an occasion, he makes an Introductory Preface, wherein he lays down the arguments of their obedience, taken partly from his power & Sovereignty, in that he is the Lord; partly from his mercy and kindness seen first generally, in that relation wherein he placed himself to them, as being their God; and more particularly discovered in a late great deliverance he wrought for them, and that both in respect of place out of a strange country; he had brought them forth out of the Land of Egypt; and in respect of condition, out of a slavish and toilsome drudgery; out 〈◊〉 the House of bondage. I Who now speak to thee from the midst of fire, out of the thick cloud, the fear of thy Fathers, Abraham, Isaac, and jacob; I that appeared to Moses in the burning bush, clothed with Majesty and dread; I who have carried thee upon Eagles wings, and have brought thee thus to myself, to show my statutes unto thee, and to make known my laws. Hear O Israel and fear and observe to do; for I AM THE LORD. The maker of all things, the absolute Sovereign of the World, jehovah, the Fountain of beings; who give being also to my word and promise: there is nothing resists my will; for my power is infinite: wherefore stand in awe and fear before me; the subjection and homage of all creatures being due to me by right of creation▪ all things are my servants, for from me and to me are all things: I spoke the Word, and they were, & are created; I made all things according to my good pleasure, and for my own glory; and men more especially for my service; and amongst all the sons of men I have chose you for my select people, for I am THY GOD by Covenant as well as by Creation, by promise no less then by providence; I made myself known to thy Fathers, and engaged my loving kindness to them and to their posterity after them; I took a particular care of you, when you were but few in number, that the Nations about you might do you no harm: I supported you under your burdens in Egypt, and multiplied you when you were sorely oppressed, in so much that of seventy persons you are become a great people; I have owned you as my charge▪ and have done wondrous things for you in the land of Cham, and HAVE BROUGHT THEE OUT with a strong hand and stretched out arm in the sight & pursuit of Pharaoh & all his host, who sunk in the midst of the red Sea, which divided itself to give thee passage dryshod; 'T was not thy own wit, nor thy own strength, that has brought about this great deliverance for thee, but it must be confessed even to the astonishment of the heathen roundabout, that my wisdom contrived, and my power hath effected it by the conduct of my faithful servant Moses, who by my appointment & by the guidance of my holy Angel, has led thee OUT OF THE LAND OF EGYPT. Where thou wast by the tyranny of Pharaoh & his taskmasters, cruelly dealt with, and slavishly employed, having neither freedom of body nor of soul, denied all opportunityes of serving thyself or thy God, captived amongst Idolaters, straightened in a q 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 arctari. land of straits, in so much that thy number increasing, they sought to destroy thee by cruel edicts; hating thee out of Antipathy, as a stranger and of another religion, and out of fear, because they saw thee grow numerous: wherefore after so many years' captivity in a strange and Heathen Land, I have called thee forth to bring thee to a country of peace and plenty, flowing with milk and honey; and above all, the Land of promise, and which, if you will be a holy people, will deservedly be styled the Holy Land OUT OF THE HOUSE OF BONDAGE. Out of that prison from whence your sighs and groans have oft pierced Heaven, out of that Bridewell, where you were kept to make brick, and raise huge piles, to be la●●ing monuments of your misery and the tyrant's lust, without the allowance of any thing for your labour but blows; not so much as stubble afforded, & yet your full tale of bricks required at your hands. Consider now at distance, what a sad life thou hast escaped; the day spent in toils, and the night in complaints: the Nation kept under in poverty and disgrace, and none to relieve thee so much as with their pity, but thy God, who have brought thee aside into this solitude, that I might make myself and my laws known to thee; a favour; which I have not shown to any nation besides; that I may espouse thee unto myself, and make thee a Kingdom of Priests, and a holy people, if thou wilt obey my Statutes & hearken to my Law, which I am now proclaiming in thy ears. I am the Lord, that have right to command, and power to punish, and therefore fear before me. I am thy God, who have entered into Covenant with thee, and will reward those that keep Covenant, wherefore I expect thy love. I have brought thee forth of Egypt from a sad bondage, where thou wast oppressed with slavery and want, & shall provide for thee Liberty and plenty, and therefore I look for gratitude: and let all three, thy fear, thy love, and thy gratitude tie thee fast unto me the Lord and thy God, and thy mighty deliverer, and oblige thee to an attention and obedience to my Law. Now although this historical passage concerning the delivery out of Egypt be peculiar to the children of Israel▪ yet the obligation and the force of the argument will reach all people whatsoever; and the Preface is by Analogy, of as large and universal an extent, as the Law itself. For at Christ's death the vail of the Temple was rend in twain, and the wall of separation which distinguished the jews (formerly the only people of God) from the rest of the nations (who had been till then heathen, and as it were excommunicate out of the pale of the Church,) was broken down; so that all the nations of the world, are now engaged in Covenant with God, and have undertaken, and made a stipulation in Baptism, to be his people, and He to be their God. And this History is turned into Allegory, and denotes the salvation purchased by Christ, who hath redeemed us from a spiritual Egypt, and the slavery of sin, and hath led us forth out of the regions of darkness, and the bondage of servile fears, to the inheritance of light, and the glorious privileges of the Gospel. Besides if we take the deliverance in a temporal sense, who is there, that, when he recounts the several passages of his life, will not acknowledge God's gracious dealings, and his wonderful mercies, in providing for him in his wants, preserving him from imminent dangers and delivering him from his fears, and the evil consequencies many times of his follies? so that if he have any ingenuity, upon so many instances of divine favour, and particular kindness, he must needs confess, that God is the Lord his God. These words may be looked on also more particularly to relate to the first Commandment, not only as an indication of him, whom we are to own, as our God; but as a reason too, why we should own him. Nor will it so have the less influence upon the other Commandments, since all religous duties depend upon the knowledge and fear of God; and Atheism is that root of bitterness, from whence all transgressions spring: for. i Psal. 14. 1. The fool hath said in his heart, There is no God, and then it follows, They have corrupted their way, they have done abominably. The first Commandment. THOU SHALT HAVE NO OTHER GOD'S. Thou shalt not follow the example of blind Pagans, and entertain a multitude of gods, nor pay that devotion to any of the creatures which is due to the creator alone; nor set up in thy heart any thing in opposition to me, or give thyself up to the obedience of any lust, nor hearken to the suggestions of Satan, nor be ruled by the vanity of this wicked world, nor turn Atheist and live without God in the world; but shalt acknowledge me the only one God in three Persons, and shalt learn to know me, the Infinite, Almighty, Everlasting, and Ever blessed God; & shalt fear before me, and have thy thoughts taken up with the meditation of my Nature and my Will, my Word and my Works: and shalt admire me in my Attributes, & obey me in my Commands; thou shalt set me always before thee, that thou mayst walk in my ways; thou shalt perform to me that Homage, as is due by right of creation; thou shalt observe my providences, stand in awe of my judgements, and have regard to my mercies; nor shalt thou ascribe whatever befalls thee to chance or fortune, to thy own wit or strength, but look on all events as the contrivances of my wisdom, and the effects of my power; Thou shalt bear a love to my name, and take thy delight in my Law; Thou shalt give up thy heart to me, and serve me with truth in the inward parts; Thy understanding shall be busily employed in feeling after me, and finding me out, according as I have made manifestations of myself, in my word and in my works, and shall guide thee by the dictates of my holy Spirit. Thy will shall be inclined to a perfect compliance with my will, according to the rules of Holiness and Righteousness, and thy affections shall be wholly carried out to me as to their proper & only object; Thou shalt believe in me, and put thy trust in me, and love me, and love those that do love me, and hate those that hate me, and what I hate with a perfect hatred Sin; thou shalt rejoice in my favour, and delight thyself in me; nor shalt thou take any occasion of sadness but from my displeasure, and let fall thy countenance when I hide mine; thou shalt meekly submit to my disposals, and burn with zeal for my glory; thy soul shall cleave fast unto me, and thou shalt serve me faithfully all the days of thy life; Thou shalt behave thyself always as in my presence, and shalt have respect to me, and be afraid of doing any thing that may offend me, in the deepest retirements of thy most private thoughts, for all things lie open and naked before me. BEFORE ME. This is added to show God's Omnipresence, as a grievous aggravation of the sin, that the setting up another God, though never so secretly, though never so much out of the sight of men, will be a down right affront to the searcher of hearts, to God who sees in secret; and that he will not endure the competition of any rival, for he alone is the God that made Heaven and Earth, and whatsoever else fond superstition has found out for the object of worship, is either the work of his hands, or the work of men's hands. This circumstance may justly affright us into a great circumspection and wariness, for the ordering our thoughts and composing our desires, of settling our spirits and governing the inward man, since God's all piercing eye is upon us, & he understands even our thoughts afar of. Some Interpreters render it. s 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. so the Chald. Syr. etc. Beside me. And this though it be not so Emphatical as the other particle, yet it more plainly infers the affirmative part of the precept, i.e. Thou shalt have no other Gods, but thou shalt have me for thy God. The Hebrew affords a pretty note from the Syntax, t 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Non erit tibi Dii alli. the Verb being of a different number from the Noun, that Singular and this Plural, as if it would be a solecism and irregular construction, to own more Gods then one, since there can be but one Infinite, one first cause, one supreme; and if we should fancy a Plurality of Gods, in a coordination, the one would bond, and hinder and countermand the other; and if we fancy them in a subordination 'tis only the highest is God, the rest are no Gods. There are indeed ( v 1. Cor. 8. 5, 6. as the Apostle says) Gods many, and Lords many, i.e. such as are called Gods, titular Gods; yet we have but one God, the Father, of whom are all things, and we in him, and one Lord jesus Christ, through whom are all things, and we through him; for as he said immediately before. We know that an Idol is nothing in the world, and that there is no God but one. If now we would but search into ourselves, and make inquiry into our hearts, how little (I fear) should we find of God there? How full should we see ourselves of superstition & profaneness? Having placed worse things in God's stead, than any of his own creatures, which was the folly of Heathenism; setting up self in the Throne, serving divers lusts and pleasures, preferring every vanity before him, making our Belly, our interest, our sport, our sin, our God. Setting not his fear before our eyes, nor living at all to his glory; and in short, being by profession indeed, Christians, but in conversation, Atheists, who know that there is a God, & yet glorify him not as God, so that we may justly make use here of the Church's Prayer, Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. The second Commandment. The first prescribes the object of our worship, and forbids a false God; This regulates the manner and way of worship, and prohibits a false service of the true God. And herein the confidence of the Roman-Church is to be admired, which to defend its Idolatry, fears not to commit sacrilege, and casheirs this Commandment from being one of the ten, thinking they make good amends, by as absurdly parting the Tenth, as they have audaciously removed this. And what they say for themselves, that they do not worship the Image itself, but God at, or by, or through the Image, and that the service is transient to the Idol and terminated upon God, is no more than an ingenuous Idolater of Heathen Rome would have said; seeing no man of understanding could be so blockish, as to pay the civility of his devotions to a log of wood, or to an Artist's phantasm, and caress a dead thing; but they surely meant their Adoration to the Deity represented and understood by that gross resemblance. Possibly the vulgar sort looked no farther than the Idol itself, which may (I suppose without breach of Charity) be thought of a great part of the Laity amongst these Christian Idolaters, whose Ignorance is the mother of their Devotion, who if they knew God better according to the first Commandment, would not worship Images contrary to the second. This Commandment hath two parts, an Explication, and a Reason; The explication first of the object what is meant by Idol, set down in two terms, Graven Image, or any likeness, amplified by Induction or a particular enumeration of things in Heaven above, in the earth beneath, or in the water under the earth, which are the three great parts of the Univers, wherein all things are contained: by this means leaving no evasion for Idolatry, no thing, no place unnam'd, that might be abused to such a purpose. Secondly of the Act, what the making to one's self means, and that in two terms too, Bowing down to them, or Adoration, and worship or service, For so the word in the original expresses it, forbidding the Dulia the lower worship, as well as the Latria, the higher, and voiding that idle distinction of two sorts of religious worship. The Reason is fetched from the nature of God, represented here by four attributes, His power for he is a strong God, so the Hebrew word El signifies, and so the Septuagint render it. His jealousy; He is a jealous God. His justice, demonstrated in his vengeance upon sinners; And his mercy, that he deals kindly with the righteous; where he aggravates the guilt of the one, and heightens the respect of the other, by the title he gives them; Those he styles his enemies and haters, i.e. those which transgress his Laws, especially this: These his friends and lovers, to wit, that keep his Commandments. And he is just and merciful not only to them, but to their posterity after them also, yet with this difference that his vengeance stops at the third or fourth generation, but his kindness propagates itself to thousands. THOU SHALT NOT MAKE UNTO THEE. This does not then simply forbid making Images or pictures, nor condemn the Art of the graving tool and the Pencil, as if carving and painting were sinful employments. Statues and Pictures may be had for civil use, i.e. for ornament, for memorial or some historical representation; but the religious use of them is forbidden, so as to set them up to worship, as Nebuchadnezar gave order for his Image, and as the Israelites caused Aaron to make them a calf, which whether they had from the Egyptians practice, or transcribed from the copy of the Tabernacle, where the Cherubs were in the same shape, it was so provoking a sin, that u Exod. 2●. 1●. Moses in zeal broke all the Commandments in pieces to see them break this one; yet these Cherubs and other pictures, in all manner of curious work, were in the Tabernacle and afterwards in the Temple, without scandal; for 'tis not the Image but the Image-worship that God is offended at. ANY GRAVEN IMAGE OR ANY LIKENESS. The former word is of a limited sense, but this latter is so general as to denote all pictures, or resemblances whatsoever, whither carved, and cut out, in wood or stone, or cast in brass or other mettle, or limned and drawn in colours, or interwoven and embroidered in cloth, or whatever other way art and fancy can find out. OF ANY THING THAT IS IN HEAVEN ABOVE. The Sun, Moon and Stars, such as the horses of the Sun, (we read of,) and the star of Remphan, and w Diana, Lucina, & Luna all One. Diana of the Ephesians; or in the highest heavens, Saints and Angels, blessed spirits. OR THAT IS IN THE EARTH BENEATH. As trees, groves and high places, herbs, as those of Egypt worshipped their leeks and onions, birds and beasts it being the heathen fashion ( x Rom. 1. 23. as the Apostle too observes it) to change the glory of the incorruptible God into such unworthy similitudes. Or men themselves, though a diviner creature, whether living, as Herod was adored; or dead, it being a common use, to canonize those after death who deserved well in their life; nay even the worst of Tyrants, that have lived the prodigies of mankind, have had a fear and reverence survive them, so far as to have their names consecrated, and get the opinion of divinity, after their deaths. OR THAT IS IN THE WATERS UNDER THE EARTH, as fishes, Sea-monsters, such as y from 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 piscis, rather than 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 frumentum. Dagon. for the mistaken devotion of the poor Heathens filled all the Elements with imaginary Deities. Nor did Heaven; Earth, and Sea, afford room enough to their busy fancy, but they have searched Hell too, for some what to worship, and the Devil himself has not escaped the base flatteries of men: The Indians to this very day worshipping him, and persuaded by those frightful apparitions he makes, to think that their devotion is not misplaced; nor is it much wonder, when his instruments, grand Usurpers and Impostors of the world, have been owned by abused people, into a divine esteem, and honoured with blasphemous Idolatry. THOU SHALT NOT BOW DOWN TO THEM, by prostration of thy body, falling flat on thy face, or bending thy knee, show them any respect, as the manner was to worship Baal i.e. the image of Baal, for so z 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Rom. 11. 4. the Apostle renders it, Baal or Belus himself having been a great Prince, and for his magnificence and great achievements, consecrated by his countrymen to divine worship. NOR WORSHIP THEM or NOR SERVE THEM, for the a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. other word is more frequently used for worship▪ thou shalt not give them any honour, nor wait upon them with any attendance, but look upon them as they are in themselves, as dead liveless things, that cannot help themselves, that have eyes and see not, etc. Thou shalt not offer to them sacrifice, nor do any other act of service as belongs to God's worship; And 'tis strange to consider how furious even the Israelites were grown, in their Idolatrous practices, when they caused their own children to pass through the fire to Moloch, performing that to the Devil, which Abraham was not permitted to do to the true God. Where we see the difference betwixt true Religion and Idolatry, that God restrains his servants, from those austerities which he might require, but the Devil puts on his worshippers upon the most bloody, and unnatural cruelties. Thus Baal's priests, and b Corybantes, Galli, etc. some others were instructed to cut and slash themselves, and as it were offer up themselves, an unreasonable service. Thus far the precept, now follows the reason of the precept. FOR I THE LORD THY GOD AM A STRONG GOD; or as the Septuagint and Vulgar read it, I am the Lord thy God, repeating that double obligation which was used in the Preface, taken from the power of God, and his goodness. That he is a strong God, implies how much he differs from any Idol, for an Idol is nothing in the world. God is El, but these Idols are Elilim, Gods of no force and of no worth, and Gelilim, dunghill gods. The Devil at best (which is one of his dreadfullest titles) is but Beelzebub, a god of flies, but God is the Lord of Housts. 'Tis God's usual challenge to these Idols that rob him of his worship, when he tells them that he made Heaven and Earth, and they sorry things were themselves made by the hands of men. The Prophet Isaiah has in a handsome Irony, put Idols themselves out of countenance, chap. 44. a place worth the turning to, for any one that is in danger of being tempted to sottish Idolatry. JEALOUS Who will not part with his honour to another that will be loved without a rival; and though he despise not a broken heart, yet will not accept a divided one, but will have all or none; and which is the effect of jealousy, when he finds the affections go astray from him and wander after other loves, he turns his extreme love into extreme hatred, & those flames burn into rage. 'Tis an Allegory God often delights to use, comparing his Church, (his beloved ones) to a spouse or betrothed wife & himself to a kind but jealous husband. Idolatry he accounts disloyalty to his bed, and frequently expostulates with his people for their going a whoring after their own inventions, and their spiritual fornications, and threatens a Bill of divorce, yet so that upon the Harlot's return and amendment he will receive her again into the embraces of his love. There are two qualities in jealousy, which render it terrible; that 'tis very watchful, to find the offence; and as revengeful, to punish it. And these the more dreadful in God, in that his knowledge is infallible, his power irresistible, and his vengeance unsufferable. And if God allowed such c Num 5. 21, 22. cruel trials to the bare surmises of men, to prove the fidelity of their wives; how will the cup of his wrath rot the thighs, and the wombs, the posterity (I mean) of Idolatrous worshippers, that provoke him to jealousy with their abominations? VISITING. A word taken from the manner of Magistrates dealing with offenders, who first go with a commission to examine and inquire into the fact; to show God's leisurely proceeding to sentence; as in the case of Sodom, he went down to see whether the sin was according to the cry; and so before, came down to view the tower of Babel, and take a judicial cognisance of the bold attempt of the builders, before he confounded them and their language. He visits then in judgement, when he comes to punish, and to afflict for sin: whence 'tis usual to say of the plague or any grievous sickness, it is God's visitation. THE INIQUITY. If an iniquity will not scape, what will become of gross transgressions? And if children must smart for the iniquity of their parents, what judgements are prepared for an Idolatrous posterity? what penalties must the parents themselves, (who are wilful transgressors, and Idolaters) expect to undergo? Thus the words afford a gradation. OF THE FATHERS. men's sins do not die with them, but survive; and the wicked man leaves a sad legacy to his relations, and makes divine vengeance his executor. So much is posterity concerned, in the virtues or vices of their Ancestors, that according as the fathers are good or bad, so the children are to inherit a blessing or a curse. Happy are those children, who can challenge a share in God's favour, by their interest in their Father's Covenant with God; and as unhappy that family, which hath God's wrath entailed upon it, by the wickedness of a progenitor. What load of judgement is to fall upon the latter ends of the world, when not only our own sins go over our head, as a burden too heavy for us to bear but the iniquities of former times are also added to the heap. UPON THE CHILDREN. This procedure seems to thwart the rules of justice; if the fathers eat sour grapes, shall the children's teeth be set an edge? God himself has d Ezek. 18. 20. other where disclaimed this course. The son shall not bear the father's iniquity, nor the father the son's, but the soul that sins, that shall die: it must be an extraordinary offence needs, that puts God upon such an extraordinary way, that makes him involve posterity in the calamity of their predecessour's guilt. 'Tis answered, & the e 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 qui pergunt peccare post patres suos. 〈…〉 speaks it plain, that 〈…〉 is conditional, and supposes the children to tread in the steps of their fathers; and than it will be but just that, if the sin run in a blood, the punishment should descend too, And indeed the Text affords this answer; for though we render it of them that hate me, the f 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Greek is more close to the Hebrew, to them that hate me; to intimate, that only those children shall suffer for their father's Idolatry, who practise it themselves; And 'tis commonly observed, that children rather become worse than their parents then better, by adding their own personal wickedness to that which they draw from their loins; besides the great advantages, which domestic examples have, powerfully to recommend any vice to children's imitation. This than will be no more than what we do to young wolves, whom we execute not only for the mischiefs the old 〈…〉 for a mischievous nature of their own. Thus treason to a 〈…〉 the blood of the whole family downward, and Idolatry is no less than high Treason to the King of Kings. Another answer is, that temporal afflictions are here meant, which many times lay hold upon innocent persons, for the guilt of their relations. For we must not suppose, that all are wicked who appear wretched, seeing that Innocence may be exercised with the miseries of this life, which will be acquitted from the torments hereafter; justice so contriving it, that the fathers shall see themselves punished in the affliction of their children. TO THE THIRD AND FOURTH GENERATION. God's glory is so much concerned in this Commandment, that upon the violation of it he gives the reins to his fury, and vengeance reaks itself upon the offender, and those that belong to him so fiercely, that the children unborn shall rue it. Upon other occasions he thinks it enough, g As in the third. to bring the delinquent himself to punishment; but in this, the whole family lies at stake, and his anger, as if he had designed them immediately for Hell-fire, burns from generation to generation. One will not afford fuel enough for wrath, nor sacrifice sufficient for atonement; nor will the Three Persons of the Godhead, whose Majesty is wounded by Idolatrous worship, be contented with two; but there must be a third generation to satisfy the injured Trinity; And because the sinner may live to see his great grandchildren, there shall be added a fourth, in the sight of whose miseries he may suffer. Thrice then and four times i.e. completely and fully accursed, are Idolaters. The meaning may be too, that judgement may sleep a while and forbear, till one or two generations are over; but God will awake, and pursue, and overtake the sinner, at the least in his third, or fourth generation, and account with him in his posterity. OF THEM THAT HATE ME. And who those are, the opposition will show; for who are those that love God? ' ris added by way of explanation, Those that keep his Commandments, who are those that hate him then, but those that break them? A Character which he particularly fixes upon Idolaters, as if this Commandment were most dear to him, and he had no enemies but those that wrong him in his worship. AND SHOWING MERCY. This looks like Sun shine after a storm; As God's justice deterrs from evil, so his mercy invites to good. The command is tempered & mixed with threat and promise, which though it come last of the two, is not the least; but what it wants in the haste of proposal, it has in the proportion of its extent; for whereas justice reached but to three or four generations, mercy spreads itself. UNTO THOUSANDS. i.e. thousand generations; or else it does not answer the third and fourth of the threat. How merciful an expression this to stretch out mercy for many centuryes of years, for some hundreds of generations beyond the end of the world; h Ramum mille sime ducis is hyperbolical. for by computation Adam himself in straight line cannot be conceived to have so many generations descending from him, when three fourteens i.e. forty and two generations make up the whole Genealogy of Christ, up to Abraham; and from Abraham upward are not very many. This was to show the Infinite excess of his mercy over his justice, even to a boast, which will be made good too; for if God's servant have not generations enough to be partners with him in glory, his own glory will receive the greater additions, and himself inherit the blessing, which would have been due to his posterity. OF THEM THAT LOVE ME, AND KEEP MY COMMANDMENTS. Or as i 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. the Hebrew has it, and the Greek renders it, To those that love me; seeing that the children of the Godly forfeit their share in the promises, if they be not godly too, and their wickedness makes them uncapable of a blessing; k Ezek. 18. 10. as God himself has declared it: For Heaven is indeed an inheritance, as God the Father of mercies of his free grace bestows it; but 'tis a purchase too, as we are bound to strive to enter, and to work out our salvation. Yet 'tis true in a temporal sense, and observation will make it good, that the wicked children of godly parents have some what extraordinary providence attend them in this world, and 〈◊〉 much 〈…〉 for their father's 〈…〉 God 〈…〉 tender of their concerns, 〈…〉 for his, and 〈…〉 promised, that it shall be well with those that fear him, and with their 〈◊〉 after them. He owns them here as friends, and will not forget them in their relations, but will show them all the kindness, which the● are capable of. And thus the Israelites in their distresses thought it a great argument in their Prayers to plead with God, not the merits, but the memories of their forefathers, Abraham, 〈◊〉 and jacob. What better portion can a loving father provide for his children? what greater legacy of love leave behind him, than God's favour, and 〈◊〉 est in divine mercy? Who are those God here calls his Lovers, his Friends? those 〈◊〉 keep his commands, that observe his precepts. For indeed friendship consists in the union of minds, and the compliance of wills: And 'tis the nature of love to seek by all means to please the party loved, and not to cross his desires or give him any offence. This is the true mark of our love to God, if we are careful to keep his commands, to do what he would have us do. And who would not love God, that loves himself? and seek his friendship, who is so ready to engage his kindness to us and our heirs for ever, and requite our love a thousand fold? This reason, as it contains a threat and a promise, and is grounded upon the justice and mercy of God, is common to all the Commandments; but is peculiarly annexed to this, as that which God takes the greatest care of, and is most jealous of the breach; and it may justly occasion our wonder, to consider that notwithstanding God's strictness in propounding the command, and his severity upon the breaches; yet his own people have been ever forward to run into Idolatry, and to take example from those very nations, whom they themselves for this very sin, have by God's command rooted out of their land and country: So that it should seem there was but too great reason, why this reason should be set particularly to back this command. The meaning of the precept is this. Thou shalt not make use of any Image, whether graven of whatsoever metal, gold or silver; or cut out of stone, or carved in wood, or fashioned in wax, or what other material soever, or any picture drawn or portrayed in cloth, paper, etc. or any likeness and resemblance of any creature in the whole world, for a religious purpose, in the way of worship, upon any pretence. Thou shalt not worship the work of men's hands, or the work of their brains, neither Image nor imagination; none of my creatures, much less any of thine own. Thou shalt neither worship them, nor me by them; but shalt consult my word, and fetch thence the rules and ways of worship; Thou shalt not be led by the example of Heathen-people, whose ignorance of me may be some excuse to their Idolatry, to follow their practices, and turn my glory into the likeness of any corruptible thing. The Sun and Moon and Stars above thee shall not dazzle thy mind by their lustre, so as to forget me, and pay that homage to those glorious lights, which is due to me, who live in unapproachable light; The trees and springs, bread and wine, and other blessings of life, shall not for their usefulness and for that helpful virtue, which I their Creator have put into them, win so much upon thy affections, as to asscribe that honour to them, which belongs to their Maker; nor shall the wonders of the deep, and the prodigious secrets, which I have laid in the womb of the seas, swallow up thy admiration, so as to drown that respect which thou oughtest to have for me; the sight of whatsoever excellency, or convenience, or dreadfulness in any of the creatures, shall but serve to give thee an occasion of magnifying my glorious perfections, and goodness and power; not to fix thy devotion upon them; for I commanded and they were made for my own glory, and for thy use, not for thy worship; The Angels thou shalt respect as my messengers, and receive my errands with reverence, but shalt not by worshipping them make them my fellows▪ The Saints who now rest from their labour, and have left thee their examples of a holy life, thou shalt remember with thanks and endeavour to imitate, and thus make them the object not of my jealousy, but of thy l 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in Deut. is rendered by the Vulg. Deus aemulator. emulation. The evil spirits shall not fright thee into religious observance, being able to do no more hurt than I let them; Thou shalt not with base flattery Idolise the persons of men, whether they be Good or Great, but carry a respect subordinate to me; In fine, Thou shalt not set thy affections, and respects upon any thing, so as to make it an Image of jealousy. Thou shalt not fall flat on thy face before any creature, or its resemblance, nor bow thy knee nor kiss thy hand, nor make any other sign of adoration, nor pray to them, or before them, or use any other gesture of worship, however thou mayst pretend to direct thy intention; nor shalt thou pay them any religious service or attendance, by building groves, temples and altars, by making priests, and appointing sacrifices or any other rites. But thou shalt worship me the Lord thy God, and me alone shalt thou serve, in body as well as soul; for I am the Creator of both; and though I am a spirit, and am to be worshipped in spirit and in truth, yet your bodies also shall be temples of my holy spirit, & I will be sanctified in them in the use of such holy rites and Ceremonies, as I have appointed, & shall hereafter appoint in my word and by my Church; that all things in my service may be done decently, & in order. Thou shalt therefore worship me according to my appointments, come to my house in my fear, & behave thyself with care and reverence in the holy place, whilst thou art in my presence, in the performance of all religious acts, and shalt bow down to me, & kneel before the Lord thy Maker. Thou shalt not consult with witches, or use other unlawful means, nor shalt thou regard sorceries, or any superstitious observances. Lastly, thou shalt give thyself up wholly, both in body, soul and spirit, to my worship, and shalt dedicate thyself so to my service, that thy body also may become a Temple of the holy Ghost. And all this thou must be the more careful of, that thou mayst not deprive me of that homage, which I expect from thee, and give away my glory to another, when thou considerst my jealousy to observe such indignities, and my power to avenge them; the severity of my justice in punishing Idolaters and their posterity after them, and the multitude of my Mercies to them and theirs after them, who have a respect for me, and a care to keep my commands. Now if we would take notice, how full the world is of Idolatry, when near three parts of four in the whole habitable world are Mahumetans and Pagans; and the greatest part of Christianity is engaged in Image-worship; what cause have we to fear the severest judgements of a jealous God? How guilty has this Land of late been of the basest Idolatry, in the blasphemous addresses to usurping powers, and imputing the villainous artifices of wicked men, to the holy Spirit of God? How have schisms, like armies of locusts overspread, and eat up the Churches of God in these Nations? every one severally inventing fal●● ways of worship, and setting up th●● abomination of desolation. How has Idolatry and Antichristian doctrine prevailed amongst us, and been eagerly▪ assisted by a seeming opposition? How many Corahs', Dathans and abiram's, have been owned & followed by giddy multitudes, that have offered strange fire, and maintained rebellion against the sacred orders, and institutions of the Church? What credit hath Sorcery, and Astrology, of late years, gotten, that many have forsaken their own prudence, and God's providence too, and given themselves up to a lying spirit. How is Self and Sin made the great Idol of all our devotions, and how do we every day provoke God to jealousy with our lusts? Sure then we have great reason to pray in the Church's words, Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. As the second gives order for the carriage of our Body, so the third sets down a rule for the chief part of the body, the Tongue; That prescribes postures, This regulates our speech; That takes care for God's Worship, This for his Name. It likewise consists of two parts, the Precept itself, and the Reason of the precept. THOU SHALT NOT TAKE, to wit, into thy mouth; thou shalt not mention & make use of God's name in thy ordinary discourse: And more particularly, thou shalt not swear, as the three m Ch●ld. Syr. Arab. Eastern Interpretations have it exactly to the Hebrew phrase; for to lift up God's Name, signifies to swear; and so in the 24. Psalms, He that hath not lift up his soul to vanity, is expounded by the words immediately following, That has not sworn deceitfully. THE NAME OF THE LORD THY GOD. God's Name is here put not only for those appellations, whereby he is distinguished, but for the divine Attributes also, for his Word and his Works, and all other discoveries, which he makes, of his Essence, power, wisdom, goodness, as has been said before in the first Petition of the Lord's Prayer. IN VAIN. Idly, to no purpose, n Vulg in Deut. super re vanâ. rashly, upon every slight or silly occasion, in common talk, or in any frivolous matter, without due reverence and heedfulness; or o So Sir 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 cum Arab. falsely, in the defence and justification of a lie: and thus the word in its latitude includes the three qualifications of an Oath, that it be made p jer. 4. 2 in judgement, in justice, and in truth. The reason follows, FOR THE LORD WILL NOT HOLD HIM GUILTLESS, THAT TAKETH HIS NAME IN VAIN. i.e. He will not q Vulg in Deut. Quia non erit impunitus. clear and acquit him, and let him scape unpunished, that shall dare to call the all-knowing. God to witness a lie. Two Observes that word jehovah or Lord helps us to; as having a double Emphasis; One is, that however a false or a vain swearer may pass, as to the notice and penalty of humane Laws, God will find out the offender and punish him. Another is, that it is said here only, the Lord, whereas before, 'twas said the Lord thy God, to show that perjury and rash oaths are sins of that nature, that God will not only punish his own people for, but even the Heathens and Infidels, whose Lord indeed he is, but he is not their God. And Heathen story is full of such examples, wherein the breach of oath has been constantly followed with remarkable vengeance. And that is intimated in that negative threat, which signifies more than it speaks out, He will not hold him guiltless; meaning, that he will most certainly punish. The sense of the Command than is this; Thou shalt not use my Name upon a design of cheat, and to cover a lie; thou shalt not forswear thyself by calling me to witness a known falsehood, and thus call some heavy vengeance upon thine own head: But thou shalt, when thou art called by the Magistrate thereunto, bear faithful witness to the truth which thou know'st, and shalt make good thy promises. Thou shalt not blaspheme my Name, by rash and needless oaths, nor upon every mean & paltry occasion make mention of it; but show a reverence and a regard to it, and take it into thy mouth with solemn care and weighty consideration. When necessity so requires, and Authority commands, for the decision of strife, and to put an end to controversy, thou shalt swear by me, and by me alone, who only know the secrets of hearts, and am able to avenge the falsehood. Thou shalt have an awful respect for every thing that belongs to me; thou shalt peruse my word with diligence and attention, reading, and hearing, and meditating in it day and night; It shall never depart out of thy mouth. Thou shalt honour my Ministers the Preachers of my Word, & the dispenser's of my holy Ordinances. Thou shalt magnify and praise my Name in the remembrance of all my wondrous works. Thou shalt take notice of my judgements and my mercies, and in all events, speak well of my Name, and whatsoever falls out in the affairs and interests of the world to say still, the Name of the Lord be praised. And to conclude, Thou shalt walk in my fear, in thy distress call upon my Name, be frequent in Prayer, and in praise, lift up thy heart and thy voice to me who hear in Heaven, and so order thy conversation, that thou mayst not cause my Name to be evil spoken of▪ but shalt live suitably to thy holy profession, that all that see thy good works, may glorify me, and by thy example may be taught to love and fear my Name. Let us but take a view of ourselves, and see whether we are such as the Lord will hold guiltless. Have not we taken the Lord's Name in vain, when generally it has been used as a stale to base interest, and a cloak for hypocrisy and tyranny? when our Pulpits have prefixed the Name of the Lord to the blackest designs, and those who would be thought strictest in professing the Name of the Lord, have set on foot rebellion, under the title of the Cause of God? when there has been such breaking of Oaths, and making of Covenants, against the Laws of God and man? In so much that for our swearing backward and forward, as the villainy of these late times has taught men to do, we may justly be termed the perjured Nation? when our orthodox teachers have been thrown into corners with indigence and contempt, that the basest of the people might fill their hands, and become Priests to a Tyrant's interest? when prosperous villainy has been blessed in the Name of the Lord, and suffering Innocence has been impleaded as guilty? when swearing is in so much credit & is looked on as the Character of Greatness, and rash oaths have the reputation of Gallantry? when we that have the Name of God called upon us, live unworthy of that calling, & make his Name be evil spoken of? O! let us pray as the Church has taught us, Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. The fourth Commandment. The third was the rule of our words, the fourth of our works, and that which is consequent to them, rest. That teaches us holy talk, This instructs us in holy walking for so our Church-Catechism has resolved the sense of this Command, to serve God faithfully all the days of our life; so that 'tis not the seaventh day only, but all seven, that we are to serve God in. He that would serve God well on the Sabbath in a holy rest, must first serve him in his week's labour, and doing the work of the six days well. The second and third concern the Manner of his worship, This more especially the Time. It hath also, as the other two had, two parts; the Precept and the Reason of the precept. The precept is attended with a large explication, what is meant by Sabbath, and what meant by Keeping it Holy. First we may take notice of the extraordinary manner, wherein it is delivered; 'tis ushered in with a Memento; Then what is to be remembered; the Sabbath and the Sanctification of it: Then follows the explication, What is the Sabbath? by Opposition first to our days of work, the other days of the week; six days shalt thou labour and do all thy work, which indeed is precept too, as well as concession, no less a Command to oblige us to diligence in our calling, than a Grant to give us leave to follow it. And the injunction is twofold, that we labour, take pains in our employment, set ourselves a work; and that we finish and make an end of our business, and do all that we have to do. Then secondly by Position, which punctually sets down the day, But the seaventh day is the Sabbath. What is it next to Sanctify the Sabbath or keep it holy? To do no work on that day, nothing of our ordinary employment, wherein the strictness of the Command appears, that all of the family as well as the Master, all of the city as well as the Magistrate are concerned, being set down here by name. Thou master and mistress or magistrate, or whatever governor; and thy natural dependencies, thy son and thy daughter: and thy acquired relations, whether by Covenant or hire, thy manservant and thy maid servant; or by purchase and possession, thy cattle; or by sojourning, the stranger that is within thy gates. The reason is taken from God's own example, whereof we have first the Narration, how he made all things in six days and rested the seaventh; and then the Design of his so doing, that he might appoint the Sabbath, wherefore he blessed the Sabbath-day, or (as the Septuagint have it) the seaventh day, and hallowed it. REMEMBER. We are too apt all over to forget our duty; worldlings especially in the pursuit of their earthly concernments, would scarce make a stop at the Sabbath, and therefore this Command summons them with a particular Alarm; a word of much weight, in the Hebrew Idiom, where the r 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Ellipsis potius Imperatiuí. quam Enallage In●in. pro Imp. Recordando re cordare. Verb should be twice repeated, Remember to remember; i.e. be sure by all means to remember; and denotes the former old custom of keeping the Sabbath, even from the beginning of the world, and therefore presents it here as an ancient institution, to be remembered. And it quickens our care, not only for the observation of the day when it comes, but for our preparation for it, before it comes; we must think of it all the week afore hand, and provide for it, that nothing may divert us from the celebration of it. THE SABBATH-DAY. A day of rest and leisure from the works of our ordinary calling, that ceasing thus from our earthly affairs, we may have opportunity to meditate on heavenly things, and lift up our souls, from the cares of this life, to the contemplation of those joys & glories, which those that serve God shall have in the world to come, where there shall be an everlasting Sabbath. TO KEEP IT HOLY. To set it aside wholly for the service of God, in public, by Prayer, reading and hearing God's Word, serving God in the solemn assembly; & in private, by meditation and study of God's Book, and other holy exercises. We are to remember both the day, and the keeping the day holy: some are ready enough to remember the Sabbath, as a time of leisure, out of carnal indulgence, but they are not so ready to remember the duty of the day, to keep it holy, and improve it for spiritual advantage. SIX DAYS THOU SHALT LABOUR. This as it declares the precept, so it shows the equity of it, if God allow us six, we should not grudge him the seaventh; Besides, it has the force of a command, and is delivered in the same manner as the other Commandments, Thou shalt labour. He that's idle all the week, has no right to the Sabbath-rest. He that's careless in doing his own work on the six days is unfit to be employed in God's service on the seaventh. The s Hence 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 cultus Dei; & 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in the second Com. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. word many times hath a peculiar signification, for the service of God, and thus it will infer, that every day is a Christian's Sabbath, and he is to be doing God's work, even when he is doing his own. AND SHALT DO ALL THAT THOU HAST TO do. Dispatch all thy business, and leave nothing undone against the Sabbath, that thou mayst be wholly vacant, and have thy thoughts as well as thy body at rest, and, thy mind free from all distractions of worldly cares, thou mayst have nothing else to think upon, but the worship of God. This calls upon us for diligence in our callings, that we must not do our work by halves, but go thorough with it; And it gives a Typical intimation too, that we would in this week of our mortality set upon and accomplish the necessary work of Repentance, Faith, and Obedience; that we may have all our accounts cleared ere the eternal Sabbath come upon us, when, if we have left that work undone, we shall have no time allowed us to go on with it; and bring it to an end. BUT THE SEAVENTH DAY. This is the Ceremonial part of the Command, but that a seaventh should be kept is Moral. For the jews in memory of the Creation, were to observe the seaventh Day (which with us is Saturday,) as their Sabbath, whereon God having made all things, rested; But Christians in memory of a greater work, of Redemption, led by Apostolical practice, have constantly observed the first day of the week, to wit, Sunday, as their Sabbath, whereon our Saviour rose again from the dead, and showed himself to his Disciples. Another difference betwixt us is, that we are not obliged to that judaïcal strictness, but are allowed a cheerful freedom, yet not so as to make it a day of pastime, for it follows that it is THE SABBATH OF THE LORD THY GOD, as appointed by him; or s 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Est a●tem 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signum fere Dativi. To the Lord thy God, as dedicated to his especial service; a day, wherein thou art to contemplate the works of the Lord wrought in the Creation, and the mercies of thy God, shown forth in thy Redemption; a time set apart not for thy business, much less for thy sport, but for God's glory, and public worship; to be spent wholly in performances of holy duties. IN IT THOU SHALT DO NO MANNER OF WORK. Nothing of common drudgery, of thy ordinary vocation, of thy weeks work; none of thy work; for it 'tis not meant that we should sit still and do nothing: but works of piety; as going to Church, and the Priest's offering their Sacrifices in the Old Law, etc. are God's work; and works of necessity, as provision of food, etc. are the works of Nature; and works of Charity, as healing the sick, taking the ox or ass out of the pit, etc. are works of Grace. And these must and may be done without any violation of the Sabbath. THOU. God here calls all the family to an account: so careful he is of his own day. And whereas in the other Commandments Thou is directed to every body, here it carries a special warrant to the superior, seeming to require of him, that he not only keep it himself in his own person, but take care also, that all in his charge keep it too. Thou whether thou art magistrate, master or mistress of the house, father, tutor, or whatever governor, employ thy authority, to see my Sabbath duly observed. Yet not so as that the superiors negligence shall be an excuse for the inferiors; for they are all spoken too here, by name. AND THY SON. Children are naturally more apt to neglect their duty, then able to perform it, or indeed willing to understand it. They must be taught it then and kept to it. Acquaint thy son therefore with my ways, and instruct him in my fear. Train him up in good courses, that he may not be prepossessed with vicious customs; Bring him to Church, let him be couversant in Scripture, and learn the principles of Religion, and seek me early, that he may grow up, as in stature so in wisdom, and grace, and favour with God and good men. AND THY DAUGHTER. No age nor sex privileged from Sabbath-duty. And these two words include all inferiors, who are not in a servile condition, all children, pupils, scholars, citizens, subjects, whose respective governor's are particularly to heed their observance of this day. THY MANSERVANT, AND THY MAID SERVANT. All thy servants whether hired or bought, all that do thee work and receive thy wages. Neither thy Avarice, nor their own lust shall employ them, and cause them to absent themselves from my service. Servants that day 〈◊〉 God's servants, and their master's fellow-servants; yet to be commanded and overlooked by their masters, that they do serve God. And indeed it is the master's great interest, to see that this day be well observed in his family, since he cannot well expect that his own work should prosper, if God's work be neglected; or that those servants will be faithful in his service, who do not care to serve God. THY CATTLE. The Greek reads here, as 'tis expressed in Deuteronomie, and thy ox, and thy ass, and thy cattle. i.e. all labouring beasts which man makes use of, for tillage of the ground, for carriage of burdens, for going of journeys, etc. that they also may rest from their usual labour, and may have a time of refreshment; for there is a charity too due to these brute-servants, and the good man is merciful to his beast. But does God take care of oxen? Though they have a share in his providence, yet what are they concerned in his Law, which is spiritual and holy? 'Tis for man's sake whom they serve, & in whose charge they are, that they are here mentioned: And indeed should the cattle have been left out, it might have looked like an allowance to worldly-minded men, to have set them on work; & the attendance of that would have proved the employment of men too, for that beasts will hardly work alone, without the direction & oversight of men. NOR THY STRANGER THAT IS WITHIN THY GATES. He that sojourns with thee within thy city, & so the Magistrate is concerned; or thy guest in thy house, and so 'tis the duty of the Master of the family; to see, that strangers of what country or religion soever comply with this Law, and do not violate the Sabbath-rest, by travel, keeping market, following their merchandise, or any other worldly occasions. The Hebrew t 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. words are sometimes taken in a special strict sense, so as that the stranger means one of another country, converted to the jewish profession and observances, called otherwise a Proselyte; and the Gates being the place of session or assize, where the judges and Magistrates met for the trial and decision of causes, mean the civil power and jurisdiction; But they are here questionless to be taken in the larger and more common sense. FOR IN SIX DAYS, THE LORD. This is the reason of the Command, and shows farther the equity of it, that we would not think much to do as God himself did, and indeed the morality of it too: for this reason concerns all mankind, Heathen, as well as jew; wherefore to intimate the universal obligation, it hath, it says not the Lord thy God as before, but only the Lord. MADE HEAVEN AND EARTH, THE SEA, AND ALL THAT IN THEM IS. He finished the work of creation, and did all which he had to do, in that first week of the world. And it would be worth our imitation, to consider, how God takes a review of every day's work, and it would be well for us, that we could every night, before we take our natural rest, take account of our actions, and see that they are good; and at the week's end before we enter upon this spiritual rest, survey the work of the whole week, and say of it, not that it were exceeding good, but that at least it were not exceeding evil. Two things in the method of God's working may be worth our particular notice, that v Gen. ch. 1. the evening is mentioned still before the morning, as if God had taken counsel o'er night, what he should do next day; and that God made man last on the very Sabbath-eve, as if he had made him for no other purpose, then to keep the Sabbath, in the admiration of his works, and the celebration of his praise. AND RESTED THE SEAVENTH DAY. God might have been working on still, and set forth his power, in new productions; for Omnipotence cannot be tired, nor Infinity be exhausted; but he was pleased to put a period to his own extraordinary actings, and by his own will determine the products of his boundless power. Again, if he had pleased, he could have dispatched all his works in a day, in a moment, and not have made such leisurely progress, and have done all at once; But he chose a number of days to accomplish his great design in; six days, that there might be an orderly proportion, and distance of time betwixt the productions of the several creatures; and but six, that the glory of his workmanship might not receive any disparagement from a seeming delay; Now whether these six days, in which the world was making, were meant to signify the continuance of the world for so many thousand years, a thousand years being in Gods reckoning but as a day, and the seaventh day of rest to typify another thousand years of Christ's reign, or an everlasting Sabbath in Heaven; or whether any other mystery lie hid in the number of seven, whence fond antiquity might appropriate the seven Planets, each to his day; and fonder Art divide the week according to planetary hours, may be guessed, but cannot certainly be known. Wherefore it may suffice us, that it pleased God so to order his work, and so to appoint a holy rest: and he sure had very great reason for observing that order and making this appointment. THEREFORE THE LORD BLESSED THE SABBATH-DAY, AND HALLOWED IT. He stamped upon it a particular respect, & set it aside from common employment, and business of life, for holy and spiritual exercises; that it might be spent in the commemoration of his wonderful works: And if the institution were so solemn upon the account of Creation, how much more, will the memory of our Redemption heighten the solemnity, and improve the observance of this holy day, which our blessed Lord and Saviour the holy jesus blessed by his rising again from the dead, and hallowed by his apparition and discourse with his holy Apostles▪ who have by their example recommended to the Church of God, as the Christian Sabbath, the first day of the week, the day of our Lord's Resurrection, for which reason it is also called the Lord's Day. Besides this weekly solemnity and day of rejoicing, it is acknowledged even by those who are no great friends to the Church's authority, that the Church hath power, to appoint and set aside for the public worship of God, other peculiar days, as occasion shall require; such as are Anniversary Fasts and Feasts; nor is the commemoration of the benefits obtained by Christ, as his Nativity, Passion, Ascension, etc. and of the holy Apostles, and other Scripture-Saints, more ancient (though it be handed to us, from the most ancient and the best times,) then 'tis convenient: the fundamentals of religion being thus scattered through the course of the year, and the Holidays next to the Lordsday, being the great remarks & cognisances of Christianity. This reason drawn from the creation, which is the moral reason of the precept, is in u Deut. 5. 14, 15▪ Deuteronomie (which is the repetition of the Law) omitted, and another of a politic concern brought in stead of it, as if the command were grounded upon an indulgence to servants, and that upon a reflection upon the condition of the Israelites in Egypt, where they had been made serve in a cruel bondage mentioned in the Preface. Though those words there (I suppose) might be added only as a reason, for the servants and the cattles rest, and an argument to enforce the equity of that, rather than to be the bottom and ground of the Sabbath itself; and yet it seems strange, that immediately after, w v. 22▪ Moses tells them, God spoke these words and no more. The sense of the command is this, Thou shalt take great heed to the observation of my day, and shalt sanctify my Sabbath, and keep it holy with exercises of public & private devotion; Thou shalt wait upon me in my sanctuary, and appear before me in the great assembly; Thou shalt come to my house in my fear, and enter my courts with due reverence; Thou shalt attend to my word, & obey my voice, and sh●lt bestow this sacred time wholly on the meditation of my Law; Thou shalt receive my word with faith, and wait upon me in the use of my ordinances; Thou shalt set one day in seven aside from all worldly concernments, and thy usual employment, and dedicate it and thyself to me; Thou shalt prepare thyself, and forecast thy business, that no other thoughts may distract thee; Thou shalt keep it a holy rest to the Lord, & shalt cause all that belong unto thee to keep it; Thou shalt not do thy own works, nor speak thy own words, nor think thy own thoughts on that day, but be taken up with the study of God's word and with the consideration of his works; Thou shalt serve me faithfully on thy six days of work, in a diligent attendance upon the duties of thy calling, that thou mayst on my day of ●est, meet with a blessing, find pardon for thy failings, and receive strength for thy performances; Thou shalt breed up thy children in my fear, and acquaint them with my ways; Thou shalt instruct thy household, and make me known unto strangers; Thou shalt be merciful to thy servants and thy cattle, and shalt let them enjoy the benefit of the Sabbath-rest; Thou shalt so observe this rest, as not to give thyself up to sloth and idleness, nor spend the time in sports and vain recreations, but make it a rest from sin, as well as from work; Thou shalt more particularly employ thyself in remembering the Lord thy Creator, and thy Redeemer, and thankfully acknowledging his benefits. Lastly, Thou shalt so pass this weekly Sabbath in holy meditations, and a heavenly conversation, that thou mayst fit thyself for the celebration of an everlasting Sabbath, to be kept hereafter with Angels and Saints in Heaven, after thou art delivered from the troubles of a wicked world. How far have we come short, of the observation of the Sabbath, in these our times, who forget the day, and neglect the duty; who neither labour on the six days nor rest on the seaventh as we should do; who profane the sanctuary, and pollute the holy place, using no reverence, and behaving ourselves in God's presence, with more rudeness than we would in the presence of men; who have made our devotions but a lip labour, and placed religion in the ear, and have excluded God's word contained in the holy Bible, and the wholesome forms of the Church to make room for the bold conceits and seditious discourses of men; who have preferred Enthusiasms before the written word; who have preached up rebellion and sacrilege, and demolished the Churches of God in the Land, & broken down the sacred ornaments with axes and hammers; who have multiplied sects and heresies, and dishonoured God, in his solemn worship, and in the public assemblies; who have made void God's ordinances, & refused to administer and receive the blessed Sacraments; who have had no regard to the Feasts and Fasts, & other ancient usages of the Church: but have set aside days of our own, and have fasted for strife, and given thanks for blood; who do not take care that we and our houses may serve the Lord, nor make any account of this sacred time; who spend the day in sloth and riot and vain sports, and do not sanctify it, and keep it holy to the Lord; who do not improve the blessing of the Sabbath to the advantages of a holy life, but continue still in gross ignorance, and profaneness; so that we may very well use the Church's Prayer, Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. The fifth Commandment. This is the hinge of the two Tables, the main joint of the whole Law, & concerns the Magistrate, who is God's Vicegerent ou earth, and the keeper of both the Tables; wherefore some assign it a place in the first Table. God having a special care of civil order, and peace in the societyes of men, has therefore set this Commandment concerning the obedience to superiors, by which peace and good order are preserved, immediately after those of his own worship, and in like manner backed it with a reason; whereas all the rest which follow are set down barely in way of Commands without the addition of any promise or threat. So then this Command is made up of two parts, the Precept itself, and the Reason of the Precept: the Precept shows the duty, Honour, and its object, thy Father and Mother: The Reason is a promise of long life, and therefore the Apostle hath called it, x Eph. 6. 2. The first Commandment with a promise; (for the Third contains a threat▪ and that of the Second is more threat than promise.) That thy days may be long on the Land, which the Lord thy God giveth thee. HONOUR. This shows a different degree and condition amongst men, and God's Law maintains the distinction. In all societyes there are some superiors, some inferiors; The Law is not for levelling. Honour would not be a duty if all were equal. Now Honour implies respect and obedience, subjection and service. THY FATHER AND MOTHER, whether thy natural parents, or civil Magistrate, or spiritual governor, or whatsoever superior, which are all by a usual propriety of the Hebrew language styled Fathers. Father having been the first dignity of the world, and all rule and government whatsoever founded on the right of paternal Authority, which aggravates an offence done to a superior & makes the offender as ungracious as one that dishonours his father. Here are meant then all manner of persons in relation, Parents and Children, Magistrates and Subjects, Ministers & People, Master & Scholar, Husband & wife, Master and Servants, old & young, noble and base, rich and poor, etc. Nor so only, but here is included also, by the rule of contraries, the duty of superiors to their inferiors, that they be kindly affected to them, rule them in God's fear according to righteousness, and faithfully mind the duties of their place. Now the duty of Inferiors is only mentioned, because they are the more likely to fail in their duty, & their neglect is of worse consequence; Disobedience dissolving & unloosening order and peace, which are the bands of society, whereas oppression does but strain and gird the ties of government too close. No Tyranny of the most wicked Prince can be so mischievous and destructive to the public, as the Rebellion of Subjects, let them pretend never so much religion for it. The great Interest of society is to obey; since the resisting of a lawful governor will in the end destroy government itself, and bring all things into confusion. THAT THY DAYS MAY BE LONG. Long life is the promised reward of obedience, but the disobedient shall not live out half their time, but shall be cut off by some untimely death, and by their seditious actings, and wilful oppositions forfeit their lives to the Law. The Hebrew y 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in Hiph. Conj. transitiv● prolongent. word may be rendered, that they, i.e. thy Father and Mother may prolong or lengthen thy days; as if the parent's blessing could instate a dutiful child into a long life. This is sure that parents at first, and afterwards civil Magistrates had power of life and death, in their families and within their own territories; and so might justly by Capital punishment shorten the lives of the disobedient. UPON THE LAND WHICH THE LORD THY GOD GIVETH THEE. Here is meant the Land of promise, which the Israelites were now going to possess, wherefore the Septuagint call it the good Land; Which z 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. word is now wanting in the Hebrew copy, though possibly expressed at first: for taking that word in, there are all the Letters of the Alphabet to be found in the Decalogue, & without it there will be one wanting: And if Moses was the first Inventor of the Hebrew Letters, as some think, and it is probable, he being the most ancient writer; 'tis as probable, that there was a Specimen & essay of them given in the Commandments, the only speech, which God hath by his own mouth uttered. This part belongs most properly to the Israelites, wherefore 'tis added, that the Lord thy God gives thee, but may be extended to us all. And here are two or three notes in't. upon the Land, that notes that the loyal and faithful shall not be turned out of his possessions & live an exiled life in foreign countries, but prolong his days, and live in peace at home: whereas rebels and traitors forfeit their estates, and lose their fortunes, by seeking unjustly to greaten them. The Land or the good Land, the Land of Canaan, notes the Land of thy forefathers, of ancient inheritance, and a Land abounding with all conveniences of life, to show that obedience shall possess the ancient demeans of the family, & live in plenty, when the rebellious shall seek their bread in a strange Land. Which the Lord thy God giveth thee, notes God's particular bounty to the obedient, and that what they enjoy comes with a blessing; and is the fruit of a promise; 'tis as if he should have said, obey thy Father and Mother, and they shall give thee life, and I will give thee Land. In Deuteronomie are inserted these words, That it may be well with thee, and that thy days may be long; for otherwise a long life spent in toil and hardship, exercised with want and misery, is a Curse rather than a Blessing: and indeed a Ab 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 sanitas. the word, which here signify the lengthening of days, has also a signification of health; for life of itself is not pleasant, but a burden rather, unless it be attended with those enjoyments & blessings, which make it comfortable, as Health, Peace, Plenty, Prosperity, etc. And such a life it is that is here promised, as the reward of obedience. But it seems in the ordinary oeconomy of Providence to fall out otherwise many times, when the dutiful child is caught away with a hasty death, and a Loyal Subject looseth both Life and Lands for his fidelity to his Prince, etc. To this I answer, That this promise is conditional, as God sees fit, who, whatsoever he does, does it always for the best, and then if he do not perform his word, as to the Letter at present, he will be better than his word hereafter. Those, whom the arrest of death disseizes of an earthly possession, he instates into a heavenly inheritance, which is indeed the Land of the living, and the Land of promise, of which Canaan was but a type. The young Innocent is snatched out of the mother's lap, to be lodged in Father Abraham's bosom. The Loyal sufferer loses to his advantage, is sequestered into bliss, is murdered into Immortality, and if he lay down his head, takes up a crown for it. Everlasting happiness is in the best sense b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 used so oft. see Psal. 21. length of days. Besides, God may cut him short, who has not failed in his duty to man, for some disobedience to himself; and he that's guiltless, and dies Martyr, as to the unjust tribunals of men, may in the account of God's justice die as a malefactor: God sometimes reckoning with the transgressors of his Law, and cutting scores as 'twere with them, depriving them of the reward of one duty, for the neglect of some other, & washing the stain of a guilty life, with the blood of an Innocent death. And 'tis no small comfort to a dying man, have he been never so great a sinner in his life, that he suffers with a good conscience, and is permitted in a manner to quit scores with heaven for his former offences. Proceed we now to the sum of the Precept. Thou Inferior whoever thou art, that art under another's power, or condition, shalt give thy superior the due respect of his place, shalt have honourable thoughts of him, shalt highly esteem him, and revear him as an Angel of God; in thy speeches & addresses to him demean thyself with humility and meekness, and all civil demonstrations of respect, according to the customs of thy people, giving him the preeminence in every thing, bearing with and hiding his infirmities; Thou shalt not slight his person, nor think or speak meanly of him; Thou shalt be subject to him, and yield a ready and cheerful obedience to him as to the Lord, in all things, that are just and lawful, and bear with his humours and his harshness, remembering that though he be man of like passions with thyself, yet he is in God's stead, and if he at any time swerve from his rule in commanding, yet do not thou decline thy duty in obeying; but when he bids thee do any thing, contrary to my will, carry thyself with submission, & resolve to suffer for a good conscience rather than to resist, where thou canst not with a good conscience obey, Thou shalt hearken to his admonitions, and submit to his corrections, and shalt endeavour by all fair means to give him content; Thou shalt not withdraw or grudge thy obedience, much less shalt thou take upon thee, to call him to account; nor yet shalt thou basely serve him in lewd offices, and wicked designs, so as to be an instrument of his cruelty or his lust, and to flatter him in an evil way, Thou shalt pray for him, and assist him in all his just undertake, and shalt return him all the good thou canst, for that good which thou receiv'st of him, from the influence of his Authority, or example; Thou Superior, shalt observe the rules of justice by giving every one their due, thou shalt look faithfully to thy charge, rule with diligence, lay out thy talents to the best advantage o● God's glory, and the benefit of thy Brethren; Thou shalt be tender of the concerns of all thy Inferiors, and oblige them with courtesy and kindness, and study how thou mayst be most useful to community; Thou shalt not be proud of thy gifts, lift thyself above thy brethren, and scorn those below thee; Thou shalt not be insolent, injurious, nor too harsh and severe, nor yet too fond and remiss, but keep a mean, so as to gain their obedience to thy Authority, and their love to thy Person. Thou Child shalt stand in fear, and regard thy father, and forsake not the law of thy mother, and obey thy parents in the Lord; Thou shalt not despise them, mock at their weakness, and with cursed Cham, make merry at their shame, but shalt show them all honour, and do them all service, and with thy virtuous behaviour, & well-doing, cause him that begat thee to rejoice, and her that bore thee to leap for joy; And when they are old, and their strength fails them, thou shalt provide for them, and see that nothing which they have need of, be wanting; Thou shalt moreover show a singular honour to their person, saluting them upon thy knee, & often craving their blessing, especially in any business of great concernment, as choice of life, marriage, etc. And thou Parent shalt love and take care of thy children, and provide fashionably for them, that they may have a livelihood, when thou art gone; thou shalt breed them up, in the nurture and admonition of the Lord, with sweet methods win them to my fear, and to the love of virtue; Thou shalt not with harshness provoke them to anger, nor yet spare correction when they offend, or spoil them with indulgence (as Heli did) to their ruin and thy own sorrow. Thou Subject shalt honour and obey the King and his Ministers, be subject to the higher powers, for conscience sake, the Lord having set them to be for a terror to evil-doers, Thou shalt pay him tribute and other acknowledgements of thy subjection, according to the Laws and custom of the country, and in an especial manner make prayers and intercessions for Kings, and all in authority, that we may under them live a quiet and peaceable life in all Godliness and honesty; Thou shalt not raise sedition, to bring an odium upon the Magistrate's Person, his Authority, or his Council; nor show any discontent, to the disturbance of public peace, nor take up arms against thy lawful Sovereign, nor maintain or assist rebellion, nor meddle with those that are given to change, or any way comply with them, or countenance them in their unjust usurpations; Thou shalt not offer any violence to the King's sacred Person, but if at any time unrighteous commands are imposed upon thee, have recourse to thy prayers, & make thy appeals to Heaven, to God the King of Kings, to whom alone they are accountable, and who will in his due time remove the oppression, and call the oppressors to an account. And thou Magistrate, shalt govern according to the rules of my word, and the known Laws of the country; Thou shalt judge the fatherless, and regard the widow, and do every one right; Thou shalt take care of both Tables of my Law, and promote the interests of Religion; Thou shalt make wholesome Laws, and see them put in execution, punish transgressors, reward well-doers, preserve peace and good order amongst men, Protect thy subjects with the Sceptre and the Sword, be diligent in thy office, and know that thou hast a great account to make to him, by whom King's reign, who is no respecter of persons; Thou shalt not abuse thy power to licence thy own lusts, and become arbitrary, nor oppress thy subjects with unjust taxes, and insolent carriage; nor yet by a fond clemency endanger thy Authority, and lessen that reverence which is due to thy place. Ye People, shall receive my Ministers as my messengers, and Ambassadors from God, and obey those that are over you, for they watch for your soul's good; and think them worthy of double honour and c S● 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 may signify. allowance, who both govern and teach, the Bishops and overseers of the flock, and own them with all fair respect, who labour amongst you and are over you in the Lord, and admonish you, and esteem them very dearly for their works sake, and communicate freely to them in temporals, who impart to you spirituals; ye shall not slight their sacred function with disgraceful terms, nor rend the Church with faction and schisms, and heap to yourselves teachers, but submit yourselves to all lawful orders & constitutions, and not be carried about with every puff of doctrine, nor entertain new-fangled opinions, and unwarrantable practices, in the ways of my worship, and Ecclesiastical Government. And ye Pastors shall look to yourselves, and the whole flock, over which the holy Ghost has made you overseers; ye shall preach in season, & out of season, ye shall do all for edification, and divide the word aright; ye shall admonish, exhort, reprove, and be burning as well as shining lights, that ye may in your lives recommend the power of Godliness; ye shall not Lord it over your brethren, nor do the work of the Lord carelessly. Thou Servant shalt account thy Master worthy of all honour, and shalt serve him with fear and trembling, with singleness of heart as unto Christ, and shalt do him faithful service. And thou Master shalt show kindness forbearing threatenings, knowing that thy Master also is in Heaven, and shalt give thy servant comfortable maintenance, and shalt not defraud the Labourer of his hire, nor keep back thy servant's wages, and thou shalt see to their carriage and govern them in my fear, that they may become my servants also. Ye Wives be subject to your Husbands, and d Eph. 5. 33. see that you reverence them. Ye Husbands love your wives, as Christ hath loved the Church, and cherish them as your own flesh. Ye young men, rise up before a gray-head, and have respect to the face of the aged; Harken to their advice, and learn by their example. And ye Old men, behave yourselves with that gravity, and wisdom, that ye may gain yourselves the reverence of the younger sort, and be as way-marks for the imitation of posterity. In fine, ye who have any advantage of learning, wisdom, honour, estate, etc. or any other excellence above your brethren, so employ it and lay it out to their benefit, that you may procure honour to yourselves, and God may have the glory. To conclude, whoever thou art, carry thyself with honour and respect to every one, in whom thou seest any part of God's Image, and look on him as thy superior, who hath any gift or ability which thou hast not, prefer thy equals, pity and help thy inferiors. This Commandment, as was said before, being placed in the middle has an influence both ways, so as to secure both God's Worship and man's Propriety. The Magistrate's sword must defend the faith, though it may not propagate it; and if Authority be once trampled upon, every one will do as they did, when there was no King in Israel, what seemeth good in their own eyes. When the hedge of Government is broken down, neither Religion nor Law shall bond us; all opinions and practices are current, and 'twill be an Usurper's interest to have the people divided. Lives and Liberties, Estates and Consciences, and all, lie open to arbitrary force, as a Prize for him that dares be most Villain. And this has been England's case in the no less sad than wicked times of Anarchy and confusion, when damnable Heresies broke forth, numerous sects swarmed up and down, when there was an intolerable Toleration of all Religions but the right; when we complied with illegal powers, and were awed by Courts of High Injustice; when parties bore rule, as false to one another, as they were injurious to the public; when our sins grew up and multiplied with our calamities, and God's judgements, and our provocations improved one another; when our Oaths of Allegiance were eluded with the Solemn cozenage of a League, and sinful combination; when we were bewildered with the witchcrafts of Rebellion, and knew not the things which belonged to our peace, but pretended to reform abuses by destroying the offices; when with tumults and Libels we drove our Dread Sovereign from his home, raised a war against him, chased him as a Partridge over the mountains, and offered violence to the Lord's anointed; when with undutyful hands we seized his Sacred Person, confined him to prisons, and vexed his righteous soul; when we (for 'twas our sins did it, and we are all Accessary) by a villainous mockery of justice brought him to his trial, & sentenced him, and (which is more than our posterity will have the heart to believe done, though we could find hands to do it) barbarously murdered our Gracious King at his own Palace-gate, adding all the direful circumstances of aggravation to that hellish impiety; when ever since our Iosiah's death, our great sin has been our punishment, we have suffered in acting, and been constantly exercised with unconstancy of wicked changes; when Loyalty hath been persecuted as the greatest Crime, and many have shortened their days for their faithfulness to their Prince; and after that our Crown, & Head too, was fallen; when the Father of our Country lived in exile, and our Mother the Church mourned in private, and was said with the bread of tears; when Sacred Orders were despised, and labourers thrust themselves into the harvest, to cut down dignities and profits, root and branch; when the Holy Ordinances were dispensed by the Ignorant, and Civil Offices administered by the Base; when there was no regard had to the Ancient and the Wise, to the Noble and the Learned, but contempt was poured out upon Princes. In short, when we have thus rebelled against King and Priest, and cast off Authority to purchase a freedom for schism and mischief; what need have we hereafter to pray fervently with the Church? Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. But as our Litanyes are requisite to deplore the national breach of this Commandment, and deprecate it for the future; so are our Thanksgivings due to Almighty God, for his wonderful deliverance of us, from those great in conveniencies and sins, we laboured under, and for the miraculous Restauration of our Dread Sovereign to his Rights, and of us to our Libertyes, which are wrapped up in his Safety: And now that the Dread Father of our Country, and the Reverend Fathers of the Church are returned to execute their Offices, and to govern us with the sword of justice, and the sword of the Spirit, & that we have been sufficiently convinced, by the twenty years' discipline of a Civil War, that the grand Interest of the People is Obedience; let us seek the Peace of our jerusalem and our Zion, and pray that God would confound the devices of all Rebels & Schismatics, whom these late mercies have not converted, and disappoint their expectations. The sixth Commandment. The fifth directs the offices of Relations, the rest show the general duties that we owe to all men in common; and they are all set down negatively to forbid all violence & injury, that being in its very nature destructive to the constitution of societyes, which cannot be preserved and managed, without forbearance of wrongs; for justice is in the Politic, as Health is in the Natural body, which keeps every part in its due temper, so that none have too much or too little; but Injury diseases the civil state, and will, if effectual remedies be not applied, in short time bring it to dissolution. Now the greatest wrong that can be offered to ourselves or our neighbour is in the life, that being the support of all blessings and comforts, if it be not itself one, since they are but leased out to us for life, and depart with it. Nothing survives life, and death by making an end of the person puts a period to all his contents and joys. Wherefore the security of life is first provided for, and set immediately after the fifth Commandment, as the Magistrate's greatest care; since, were our lives exposed to the wild passions of men, Kings would want subjects, and God worshippers, and two or three mighty hunters would depopulate the earth. To kill a man is made therefore the greatest crime, as that which cannot be made amends for (whereas for other losses there may be some reparation) and as a sign of mortal hatred, which can be content with nothing but the destruction and annihilation of the thing hated, and is the greatest breach of Charity. THOU SHALT NOT KILL, or MURDER. Thou shalt endeavour by all fair and lawful means to preserve thy own and thy neighbour's life; Thou shalt not lay violent hands on thyself, nor bring thyself rashly into danger of thy life, by tempting providence, by surfeit, or any other sinful or perilous course; Thou shalt not neglect thyself, nor deny thy body fit sustenance and refreshment, and for the preservation and recovery of thy health, take the advice of the learned, and honour the Physician; Thou shalt defend thyself from injurious assaults, and make a stout resistance, when force is offered; Thou shalt esteem and set by thy life, and not part with it upon mean and paltry terms, but act like man, and give a fair account how thou quit'st the stage, & think no sorry affront or idle abuse deserves the hazard of so precious a thing, or be so fond of thy reputation, as to clear it with thy blood; and yet when just and honourable occasions call for thy life, such as are ●he testimony to my truth, the assistance of thy King, and defence of thy country, thou shalt fairly venture it, & not spare thy life to death, but lay it down for thy brethren; nor shalt thou make self preservation an argument for thy cowardice, since the e Rev. 21. 8. fearful as well as the dogs, shall be excluded my Kingdom; nor shalt thou out of self love basely sneak and withdraw thyself from thy duty; nor favour thyself in my service, but love me with all thy strength, and keep thy body under, and practise austerityes of self-denial, so as to mortify the flesh, not to procure thy death; Thou shalt in like manner do all that lies in thy power, to maintain thy neighbour's life, and safety; Thou shalt not slight him and pass him by in his distress, but give him seasonable help; Thou shalt not out of passion or thirst of revenge, with sword, or poison, or any other instrument of death, make him away; for he bears my image, and he that spills man's blood, by man shall his blood be spilt; Thou shalt not beat, nor strike, or any other ways misuse him, or do any thing to grieve him; Thou shalt not hate him in thy heart, or bear him any grudge, nor owe him spite; for he that hates his brother is a murderer; Thou shalt not vex him with reproachful words, nor jeer him with upbraiding language, or scornful behaviour, to sadden his heart, and alter his countenance; Thou shalt be harmless in thy carriage, and meek, and gentle, and courteous, and civil, and obliging; Thou shalt not do or think any body any hurt, or so much as wound them with a bitter word; Thou shalt not break out into unruly and boisterous passions, nor be angry without a cause; Thou shalt take wrongs rather than give, nor yet be of so stupid and sheepish a patience, as to bring a contempt upon thyself, which may make thee useless, or to let my glory suffer, but on this occasion to boil over with a generous zeal, and vindicate my name; Thou shalt not be too ●igorous and harsh, of a fierce and cruel, of a dogged and sullen, or of a peevish and froward disposition, but be mild even in thy corrections and punishments, and pity the person, when thou chastisest the vice; Thou shalt not be strict in asserting thy own right, and prosecute thy interest to the utmost advantage, but yield of thy right, and be content to sit down with the loss, rather than engage in quarrel and venture the losing of peace; Thou shalt not only refrain injurious actions thyself, but shalt do thy best to hinder others too, in their violent attempts; Thou shalt exercise a just severity upon capital offenders, and take heed of licensing or encouraging villainy, by a fond gentleness; Thou shalt for God's glory, and thy neighbour's safety, venture upon brave hazardous actions, and in the confidence of thy honest intentions defy danger, yet thou shalt not rashly and presumptuously cast thyself away; nor shalt thou upon slight occasion, or a private account, give or entertain a challenge, and in the wicked folly of duelling venture thy death and damnation together; but when the Magistrates authority has armed thee against a public enemy, whether a foreign Invader or a domestic Rebel, upon just and necessary reasons, let the goodness of thy cause embolden thee, and with Christian courage dispute the Interests of Religion and thy Country, and make not power or pay, but peace and settlement, the end of thy warlike undertake; Lastly, thou shalt be very tender of every one's life, as of thy own, and shalt not do any thing purposely to prejudice another's life, or his comforts, and shalt be wary of doing aught, which may indirectly, or by casualty, either deprive him of it, or embitter it to him; but shalt by thy mild behaviour and offices of friendship and kindness, help to make his life pleasant and lasting. And now when we do but think, how peccant the Nation hath been in this Command; how we have murdered one another for hire, and improved the heats of a civil war, with private animosities, with a blind zeal & the rage of a mistaken conscience, thinking we have done God good service by sacrificing one another; How we have pretended public justice to our ambitious designs, and pulled all down that stood in our way to greatness; How we entitled ourselves to Saint-ship by binding Kings in chains, and their Nobles in fetters of iron, and accounted it our duty to God to kill and murder our fellow subjects, and imbrue our hands in the blood of our Sovereign; How still we are given to quarrel, and are loath to lay down the cudgels of contention, but are ready to justify a wicked Cause, to new troubles, and a second trial of war, and by our discontents tempt providence to remove our peace; How zealous and industrious we show ourselves in promoting faction and making parties; How we sharpen our tongues and our pens, to shoot bitter words against one another; How peevish and sullen, how easily provoked, and how hardly reconciled, how eager upon slight occasion to break peace, and part with charity, and about things indifferent how not indifferent we are; have we not very great cause to pray, as the Church teacheth us? Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. The seaventh Commandment. The sixth secures life, This orders the preservation of chastity; they both forbid any wicked attempt upon our neighbour's person, That by curbing anger, This by bridling lust; That prohibits the kill, This the defiling of our neighbour; and indeed though Life be the first considerable, yet Chastity is a greater care, seeing that the abuse of the body by uncleanness draws along with it a greater danger to the injured person, than murder, as that, which being commonly attended with consent, makes the sufferer accessary, and wrongs the soul no less than the body. And possibly some such reason there might be for the f LXX. Int. Rom. ed. vid. Mar. 10. 19 Luc. 18. 20. Rom. 1●. 9 transposing of these Commandments in some copies, and placing this of adultery and that of theft before murder; the staining or impoverishing one, being as bad as killing one out of the way, and as good have no life at all, as to live in disgrace or want. THOU SHALT NOT COMMIT ADULTERY. Thou shalt not through lust or intemperance or any wanton excess, abuse thy own, or thy neighbour's body, or break the rules of chastity, but shalt with great care keep a holy and a clean conversation, and denying all ungodliness & worldly lusts, and unlawful pleasures, preserve thyself pure from all filthy pollutions of the flesh; Thou shalt be moderate in the use of all lawful pleasures and recreations, and order them to serious ends, to make thee more cheerful in the service of me, and the performance of the duties of life; Thou shalt not greedily devour the creatures I provide for thy use, and fill thyself with meats and drinks, to indispose thee for prayer or business; Thou shalt avoid surfeiting, and drunkenness, and gluttony, nor yet pinch thyself with unreasonable abstinence or sordid thrift, but allow thyself honest and suitable refection and recreation; Thou shalt not be too nice and dainty in the choice of food, and other treatments of thyself, but content thyself with that which is wholesome, and agreeable to thy condition; Thou shalt make a sober and a temperate use of my gifts and allowances, & be watchful and jealous over thyself at food, in company, in thy delights and pastimes, and at thy leisures, that the tempter may not take advantage of thee; Thou shalt be careful of thy habit and attire, that it be decent and comely not garish and immodest, that it be fitted for warmth, to hide nakedness, not to show pride; Thou shalt in thy gesture and behaviour compose thyself to a cheerful modesty, so as to show civility and courtesy, not to discover wantonness, or invite lust; Thou shalt shake of sloth, and take heed of idleness, as that which betrays to such temptations, and breeds & nurse's lust; Thou shalt not too much indulge thyself to sleep, but take a competent share, which may be convenient for thy health, and employment, to repair nature not to besot her; Thou shalt keep thy vessel in holiness, and forbear all gross uncleanness; Thou shalt not wrong thy neighbour's bed, nor offer violence or enticement to any one; Thou shalt not use, nor allow the use of stews, nor frequent places of ill fame; Thou shalt not burn with unnatural lusts, nor practise secret villainy, or give thyself up to dishonourable passions, and beastly sensuality, but learn from the examples of my vengeance to stand in awe of my judgements; for whoremongers and adulterers God will judge: and thou shalt be holy as I am holy, and pure that thou mayst see God; Thou shalt avoid filthy communication and foolish speech, and idle jesting, but have thy discourse seasoned with salt of discretion, that it may not corrupt good manners, but tend to edification; Thou shalt not look upon any one to lust, nor reach out a desire in thy heart after the appearances of beauty; Thou shalt not be wanton in thy apparel or demeanour, but behave thyself with bashfulness and with modesty, complying with civil & fashionable customs; Thou shalt be ware of meetings, shows, plays, sonnets, dances, and all other occasions, which may prove invitements to ill, for fear thou fall into the snare of the Devil; Thou shalt in private have awful thoughts of my presence, and when necessity, or chance, or duty, brings thee forth into the public and the sight of men, so behave thyself, with that circumspection, that thou mayst not get any soil from converse, nor disimprove thyself; but better thy company, obliging them, with all civil respect, and yet with the gravity of thy carriage checking vain thoughts, and hindering the first opportunityes of ill; it being easier, to master lust in its beginning, then to prevent its growth; Yet if thou canst not contain thyself in the limits of a single life, thou shalt in my fear, make use of that remedy, which I have appointed, and shalt pray to me to direct thee in thy choice, that thou mayst have a woman of understanding; Thou shalt not rashly or for carnal satisfaction enter into the holy state of matrimony, but for my glory, and mutual comfort, & shalt look upon marriage as an honourable institution; Thou shalt not place thy affections, where my law & rules of honesty forbid it, and shalt have a reverence for thy near alliances, and take heed of yoking thyself unequally; Thou shalt faithfully perform the marriage-covenant, and have a loving and sweet respect to one another's persons, a quiet and affectionate care for one another's good, this society having been the blessed ordinance of Paradise & being the most solemn engagement of friendship. To conclude, in whatsoever estate of life whether single or married, let thy conversation be clean, and free from all pollution, both of body, soul and spirit, and be not fashioned to the world, but keep thyself unspotted from it. To reflect upon ourselves; we must confess ourselves very guilty of the breach of this Commandment, who are so full of uncleanness; who serve divers lusts and pleasures, and are lovers of pleasure more than of God; who make provision for the flesh, study our ease and carnal content, & give ourselves up wholly to the lust of the eyes; to the lust of the flesh, and the pride of life; who pamper our bodies and starve our souls; who drink wine to excess, and sit at it till it inflame us; who spend our time in chambering and wantonness, in sports and plays, with that constancy, as if recreation were the duty of our life, and we had nothing else to do in this world, but to take our pastime in it; who follow wicked counsel and lewd practices, & boast of sins many times we do not commit, who are immodest in our attire, wanton in our carriage, filthy in our discourse, abominable & loath-some in our actions, without shame of sin or fear of judgement; who wallow in all sensuality, and study fleshly delights; who take up affected garbs, & imitate every foolish fashion; who think we can never serve ourselves enough▪ nor our God little enough; who are not ashamed of the appearances of evil, but account our shame our glory, and think it our gallantry, that we dare seem lewd; who have forgot modesty, and know not what Temperance means; who take marriage, for an opportunity of sinning with a greater safety, and use it as a market, rather than an institution of God's, and besides those purposes, for which it was appointed; who would willingly have no other God but our belly, no other religion than Epicurism, no other business or study but our ease and pleasure; so that we have too just an occasion to make use of the Church's words, Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. The eighth Commandment. The sixth and seaventh secure our persons, This our goods, and is the fence of propriety; for estates are not to lie in common, but are bounded with Laws, that every one may know his own. The seaventh forbids the community of wives, This of other possessions: And indeed the breach of this Command is the great disorder of society, and the main drift of Laws is to secure estates to the owners, and to judge of titles, and to punish fraud and cozenage; And the various condition of men, as it serves to set forth the wisdom of God's Providence, in contriving suitable accommodations to every family and person, so it encourages industry, seeing every one may by the labour of his hands provide for himself, and expect a success according to his diligence; whereas were things put in an equality, or laid up in one common stock, the idle would live upon the labours of the painful, and he that were strongest would invade other's right, and make himself master of the greatest share: Well than has this Commandment provided, that men may not think to thrive by idleness or unjust means. THOU SHALT NOT STEAL. Thou shalt do thy neighbour no wrong in his estate, but in all worldly concernments observe such a rule of justice and equity in thy dealing, that thou neither injure him nor thyself; Thou shalt not directly nor indirectly play the thief, by taking away that which belongs to another, either privily and without his knowledge, or openly and by force, without his consent; Thou shalt not go shares with thiefs not consent to them; Thou shalt restore what thou findest to the right owner, nor conceal and keep it by thee; Thou shalt not take bribes, nor set justice to sale; Thou shalt not inveigle persons, nor steal goods; Thou shalt be faithful in thy stewardship, and just in all thy accounts; Thou shalt perform thy trusts, and be upright in thy place; Thou shalt not meddle with any thing dedicated to my service, and the use of the Church, or think sacrilege an improvement of estate; Thou shalt not remove the ancient bound and land mark, nor encroach upon thy neighbour's possession; Thou shalt not defraud the labourer of his hire, nor detain his wages, which he hath earned with his sweat; Thou shalt be true and just in all thy dealings; in buying and selling thou shalt consider and prise things according to their worth; Thou shalt not cheat and overreach in bargains by putting of false wares, or using false weights and measures, by raising prices, and setting up monopolies; Thou shalt not borrow, or take up upon trust, without intention to pay; Thou shalt not oppress the poor nor exact more of him, then he's well able to part with; Thou shalt make punctual restitution of any thing received, and be exact in the discharge of thy debts, and in all engagements use conscience; Thou shalt not purchase preferment in the Church, nor buy or sell places of justice or public trust, which are to be rewards of merit, not the acquists of money; Thou shalt be grateful to thy benefactors, acknowledge their courtesies, and to thy ability make requital; Thou shalt not study thy own gain alone, but be helpful to thy poor neighbour, and be moved with charity towards him, lending and not hoping for any thing back, forbearing him and sometimes forgiving, if thy condition will permit, and his require it; Thou shalt not put thy money out to g 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 foenus à 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 momo●dit. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 foenns. biting usury, so as to oppress and disable the debtor; Thou shalt honestly return any pledge or pawn, which is put into thy hand; Thou shalt do good with thy estate, and forget not to communicate, and to distribute; Thou shalt be merciful as I am merciful, feeding the hungry, clothing the naked, visiting the sick, relieving the prisoner, and showing kindness to strangers; Thou shalt be liberal, free hearted & open handed, in thy alms-doing, and upon occasions of public necessity or design; Thou shalt not be niggardly or sordid in thy way of life, or hardhearted or uncharitable, nor yet unthrifty, & lavish, so as to disable thy estate; Thou shalt not trouble thyself with unquiet thoughts, and carking cares for this life, what thou shalt eat, and wherewith all thou shalt be clothed; Thou shalt not be covetous to gather wealth any how, and deny thyself those enjoyments, which God hath allowed thee; Thou shalt know how to want, and how to abound; Thou shalt not murmur and repine at God's disposals, but submit to his wisdom & trust his providence, and rest fully satisfied with thy present condition, assuring thyself that a contended mind, and an estate well got, (be it never so little) is better than much riches; Thou shalt not be too sparing, nor too profuse, but thriftly husband thy means, that they may hold out to secure thee against want, and to enable thee for Charity; Thou shalt not live an idle life, nor take ill courses, and follow dishonest ways of get, as cheating, gaming, etc. but shalt take pains in some honest calling, and shalt learn to labour and get thy own living, in that state of life, wherein God shall place thee, that thou mayst eat the labour of thy hands, and it may be well with thee; that thou mayst provide things fashionable for thy self and thy relations, and mayst have wherewith to exercise Charity toward them that are in want. Let us now take a view of ourselves, how our carriage has answered this Command. Was ever more injustice and illegal oppression, then of late years amongst us? Has not covetousness been the root of all our evils? Have not the possessions of the Crown and the Church been made the spoils of War, and the reward of villainy? Have not men of quiet spirits been rendered Delinquents for their estates, and their greatest crime been their wealth; when 'twas enough to make one Malignant, to have any thing to lose, and the great art of the Usurpers was to secure their fears & jealousies, by satisfying their avarice, and make good their title to government by getting the riches of the people in their power? What plundering and pillaging, what rifling and robberies have been practised? what Sequestrations, Compositions, Decimations, Contributions, and other unheard of injuries and insolences have been Committed upon the loyal gentry, and poor commonalty? what havoc has been made of Sacred things, and how has Sacrilege been justified by her children? when Intruders have been bold to expostulate with God, and quarrel the justice of man, that they are forced to give place to the right owners, and restore unjust possessions; How have the noble and the learned been turned out by force, of their ancient demeans, and just preferments, to seek their bread? How have the old bounds been removed, and the public coffers exhausted? How are great estates amassed by cheat and cou●enage, and private men swollen up with illgot wealth? How is charity neglected, hospitality shut out of doors, and the love to the poor grown cold? How many idle & dishonest ways of living are kept on foot? How does the number of Beggars daily increase to the shame of authority, that neither employs the able, nor relieves the weak? How miserable and close are men upon honest designs? How profuse and lavish upon their lusts? How do we murmur at the disposals of providence, and how ready are we with our private discontents to disturb the public peace? What need then have we to cry out with the Church, Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. The ninth Commandment. The eighth requires truth in our dealings, This in our discourse and speech; That provided for our estate and fortune, This for our credit and reputation; That secures our Goods, This our Good name, which is of dearer concern, than any other possession; for a good name is better than life itself: Murder, Adultery & Theft are forbidden in the other three, This prohibits a Lie, which is the cloak and cover of all other sins, and likely accompanies them, especially this last to a proverbial observation, A Liar and a Thief. THOU SHALT NOT BEAR FALSE WITNESS. h Non eris testis mendax. Thou shalt not be a lying witness, says the Vulgar, i.e. Thou shalt not make or tell a lie concerning or against thy neighbour. The Greek doubles it, i 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Thou shalt not falsely witness a false testimony, taking in the distinction of a lie into material and formal. To speak an untruth, and say that which in itself is not so, though I perhaps may think it so, is a material Lie; for though I am true to my own thought by speaking as I think, yet I am not right to the thing: this is a false testimony. Again, to speak contrary to my own sense, though possibly the thing I say be true, is a formal Lie; for though I be mistaken, and the thing be otherwise then I think it is, yet, if I speak otherwise then I think, I lie, and this is to witness falsely. So then we have a double care lies upon us, to speak according to the thing, and according to our thought, when our words agree with our thoughts, and our thoughts agree with the things themselves; when the mind represents the object aright, and the tongue doth as truly report the mind. The Hebrew, as if it meant mainly the concerns of truth in judicial proceedings, has it thus; k 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Non respondebis. Thou shalt not answer as a witness of falsehood, to wit, when the Magistrate puts a question to thee, and requires to know the truth. But the meaning of it is to be enlarged to all affairs; and so in Deuteronomie 'tis expressed, l 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. a witness of vanity, which implies rash censure, reproaches, and vain speeches, etc. AGAINST THY NEIGHBOUR, or for thy neighbour, in thy neighbour's cause and behalf, etc. for the m 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in, cum, per, contra, etc. preposition carries a great latitude of sense; And 'tis no less a wrong to Truth and justice to speak a Lie in favour, as to speak it out of malicem; & 'tis justice and Truth which are considered in God's Commands, more than interest and benefit. Who our neighbour is, our Saviour in his Parable has told us, all mankind, all that we have or may have to do with; whether they live near or far off, though God does allow in some cases, degrees of charity, according to Relation, neighbour hood, country, etc. The meaning of this Commandment, is this. Thou shalt in all thy discourse take heed to Truth, and speak according to thy conscience, nor shalt thou conceal what thou knowest, when my glory or the benefit of thy neighbour requires it; Thou shalt not give in a false evidence, nor plead a wrong cause, nor favour injustice, nor tell a lie to advantage; Thou shalt not knowingly say that, which thou thinkest to be false, with a purpose to deceive others, nor shalt thou be over confident in affirming what thou art not sure of; Thou shalt not basely dissemble, and pretend one thing and mean another, for God is the God of truth; Thou shalt not speak or think ill of any one in thy heart, by entertaining evil surmises, and taking up a reproach, or ill report against him; Thou shalt not be curious to spy out his faults, nor critical and censorious, nor shalt thou slander him with thy tongue, or speak ill of him behind his back, and flatter him to his face; but thou shalt make the best of his actions, & put the fairest interpretation upon his carriage; Thou shalt speak all the good of him thou know'st and cover his failings, believe and hope the best, and not give ear to all thou hearest, & in all thy converse show thyself ingenuous and open breasted, to think no evil of him, and to acknowledge what thou seest good in him, and be as tender of his reputation as of thy own; Thou shalt not be double-minded, nor hasty in thy promises, nor false in thy purposes, but sincere and constant, that thy sayings and doings may agree; Thou shalt bridle thy tongue, and avoid foolish speaking, and let no rotten communication come out of thy mouth, but with steady gravity weigh thy words aforehand, & speak to edification; Thou shalt not discover secrets committed to thy trust, nor vainly babble of every thing thou knowst, nor yet conceal necessary truths, but be faithful and trusty in thy silence, and discreet in thy speech; Thou shalt not be churlish, of difficult address, and hard to be spoke with, nor yet full of insignificant compliment and artificial craft; but shalt show thyself courteous and affable, ready to hear and to answer; Thou shalt not be clownish and rude in thy converse, nor yet act the buffoon by abusing Scripture, or jeering thy betters, or other foolish drollery, but use civil & cheerful language, and according to thy company and occasion fit thy discourse; Thou shalt not be overforward and magisterial in finding faults, nor yet cowardly and fearful of displeasing, but tell thy neighbour freely of his sin, when thy duty requires it of thee, and opportunity invites; Thou shalt not impudently proclaim thy sin, and brag of thy evil doings, nor be too confident in boasting of thy gifts, but leave it rather to a stranger to commend thee; nor yet (to shift duty, or out of vain glory) speak meanly of thyself, and lessen thy endowments, but shalt put a just value upon thyself and thy parts, that they may be useful; and be wanting in no fair and modest way to keep up thy credit, and maintain thy reputation. Above all, thou shalt by a blameless conversation endeavour to keep a good conscience before God, and a good name among men, and do those things which may make thee well spoken of; And yet thou shalt not be over fond neither of thy reputation, so as to affect applause, but design rather to live to conscience then to same, and whilst thou dischargest thy duty, not to look on good report as thy reward, nor to be discouraged by evil report from doing good, and to mind more what thou dost, than what others say or think of thee, and refer thyself to God, who sees in secret, and will make righteous judgement. If we call ourselves to an account for this Commandment, and say we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and there is no Truth in us. How has Truth failed amongst us? How have our Prophets, who should have been the Ministers of truth, prophesied lies, in the Name of the Lord, calling good bad, and bad good, and pretended the Lord sent them, when he sent them not? How have our Courts of justice been filled with falsehoods, and iniquity been enacted by a Law? How have false witnesses and wicked judges rose up, and sentenced the righteous, and condemned the innocent? How has justice been perverted to wrong ends, and Law been made an instrument of oppression? How have we in this Hypocritical age lied and dissembled to one another, and spoken with a n Psal. 12. 3. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. heart and a heart, with flattering lips and a deceitful tongue? How have we flattered the wicked, whom God hated, and slandered the footsteps of the righteous? How disingenuous are we? how quick-sighted to spy moats in others eyes, and not see the beams in our own? How apt to magnify ourselves, and think meanly of others? How ready to believe every flying report, & to take all things that another does in the worst sense? How little trust or honesty to be met with? How perfidious and false, how cunning and close, how ill-natured and sullen have most men been? With what starched gravity, and pretences of sanctity have we imposed upon one another? What vain babbling and filthy talk, obscenity and scurrility, are abroad in the world? How forward are we to censure others, to speak the worst of every body, and to find fault with our superiors, and meddle with things that concern us not? How do we prise the commendation of men, and yet slight conscience, and cannot endure to be spoken ill of, nor yet be at the pains to do well? How highly do we esteem reputation, and value a good name, and yet care not ourselves to be good, and lead a blameless life free from great offences? Lord have mercy upon us, and incline our hearts to keep this Law. All the other Commandments do more immediately order the outward man, the first and the tenth look inward, and regulate the thoughts and the desires. The first Commandment is the groundwork o● Religion, and the tenth the top-stone of Morality; That enjoining the Fear of God, and This requiring Contentedness and self-denial. Atheism affronts the Worship of God, and Covetousness disorders the Society of Men; That will acknowledge no God, and This will have no Neighbour. Wherefore 'tis well placed at the bottom of the second table as the Master-sin, the great enemy of Charity, and that which all the other transgressions resolve themselves into; The other precepts indeed hold thy hand that thou mayst do thy neighbour no wrong; This holds thy heart that thou mayst wish him none. Here is the sin forbidden, Thou shalt not Covet: and the object particularly expressed either for profit or pleasure, Thy Neighbour's house, his wife, his man servant, his maid, his ox and his ass; and then generally proposed, nor any thing that is thy neighbour's. THOU SHALT NOT COVET or desire. This strikes at inordinate affections, at concupiscence, which is that root of bitterness; Thou shalt not out of envy to thy neighbour, or out of love to thyself (for so one of the words in Deuteronomie signifies, o 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in Hithp. Conj reciprocâ. Thou shalt not desire to thyself;) desire any thing away from him. THY NEIGHBOUR'S HOUSE, his convenience of habitation, the place of his abode, where he has pitched his tent for his security, and gathered the comforts of his life about him; be it a fairer or stronger building, seated in a better air, encompassed with better neighbours, and furnished with better commodities of life. THOU SHALT NOT COVET THY NEIGHBOUR'S WIFE. This is not a distinct command from the former, for 'tis the act not the object which makes the sin; and so the p Rom. 13. 9 Apostle quotes it, Thou shalt not covet; and 'tis plain, that House & Wife are not meant for several precepts, though the one be coveted out of Avarice, the other out of Lust; for here follow other things in the former way of coveting; as, the Ox and the ass: but for particular instances only, the enumertaion therefore ending with an etc. and all that is thy Neighbour's. The House is reckoned first, and then the housekeeper, the Wife, to teach the man that he must first provide a livelihood, and way of subsistence, before he think of a wife; and to put the woman in mind, that she ought to be a Housewife, not to be a gadder abroad or live at random, but to be the stay of the family. In Deuteronomie the wife is mentioned first and so by the Septuagint here, as the Mistress of the House, & one that is not to be reckoned as a part of possession, but as the man's partner in all his fortune, & governess of his affairs. The wife than is not to be desired, for her beauty, for her portion, for her discretion, etc. The House and Wife are a man's particular choice; the House his castle, and the Wife of his bosom, the delight of his eyes and the joy of his heart. 'Tis most injurious therefore to covet these. The Samaritan here, q 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. and the Greek make mention of his field, and the Syrick of his vineyard too, the one for bread and herbage, the other for drink, i.e. Thou shalt not covet any part of his revenue: men's estates lying generally in houses and lands, and in former times, in cattle too & servants, wherefore they are also expressed by name, NOR HIS MANSERVANT, that tills his ground, that looks to his cattle, that waits upon his person, and manages his affairs, in whatsoever condition he serve him; Thou shalt not desire him for his fidelity, for his strength, or for his wit, or any other good quality thou hearest of him; for this would be to disable thy neighbour, and take his right hand from him. NOR HIS MAIDSERVANT, that looks to the house, that makes provision, that gives her attendance within doors, and minds the business of the family, under her Mistress' government and direction; Thou shalt not cover her for her care, or her diligence, or her prudence, or any other good quality; for this would take away his wives right hand, and make her cares toilsome; much less shalt thou desire her out of lust, for this would bring an infamy and reproach upon thy Neighbour's house. NOR HIS OX, which helps him in the tillage of his ground, NOR HIS ASS, which helps him in carriage of burdens: for this would be to lay a load of drudgery upon the servants, and disappoint the culture of his field and vineyard. The Greek adds, nor any of his cattle, for they are to maintain his house. NOR ANY THING THAT IS THY NEIGHBOUR'S. This includes every thing else, Moneys, jewels, Raiment, etc. Whatsoever he has, be it of great or small concernment, whether it be for his profit or his delight; Thou shalt not meddle with it in thy thoughts nor hanker after it in thy desires. The Sum of all may be this. Thou shalt not think it enough to do thy neighbour no wrong in word or deed, but thou shalt love him & wish him well in thy heart; Thou shalt not covet any thing that is his, but shalt regulate thy affections, and set bounds to thy thoughts and desires; Thou shalt subdue all carnal lusts, and evil concupiscences, that thou mayst be sanctified throughout both in body, soul and spirit, and mayst be led by no unruly passions; Thou shalt refrain thy appetite, and keep it within the rules of right reason, the necessities of nature, and the appointments of God's Law, so as to be moderate in thy desires, and enjoyments of meat and drink, of ease, and sleep, and all lawful pleasures; Thou shalt gather in thy affections, and bind them up with my fear; Thou shalt not hate thy brother, nor yet love him with that sondness, as to honour him above me; Thou shalt not love the world, nor the things of the world, nor engross all thy love to thyself; Thou shalt take heed of all unchaste love, and wanton dalliance, but thou shalt love thy neighbour with unfeigned Charity, and make after whatsoever things are good, and of good report; Thou shalt not give thyself to immoderate joy, or to over much melancholy; Thou shalt not rejoice at any one's misfortunes, nor be grieved at his well-doing, or look upon him with an evil eye. But thou shalt keep an even and composed spirit, equally tempered to joy and sadness, that thou mayst rejoice with them that rejoice and weep with them that weep, that v jam. 5. 13. thou mayst in thy grievances pray, and in thy mirth sing Psalms; Thou shalt not be too confident nor yet too distrustful of thyself, neither shalt thou place thy trust in man, nor too much stand in fear of him, seeing his breath is in his nostrils: But thou shalt hold so even a balance betwixt thy hopes and fears, that thou mayst in Charity endure all things, and hope all things, and that thou mayst walk with care and circumspection, and set thy heart upon thy way; Thou shalt not break out into passions, upon slight occasion, or study revenge, but shalt keep in thy anger, and when my glory calls for't, employ it in zeal and sin not; Thou shalt cleanse thy heart, the fountain of actions, denying all ungodly lusts, mortifying the desires of the flesh, wrestling with temptations, and fight the good fight against thy three grand enemies, the world, the flesh, and the Devil; Thou shalt not nuzzle thyself in carnal security, and give thyself to idleness, neglecting thy prayers and thy duties, and opening the door to temptation, and fattening thy heart for destruction; Thou shalt strive against the first suggestions of thy lust, and shalt crush the cokatrice in the egg, before vanity have got the dominion over thee; Thou shalt withstand the evil one, that he may fly from thee, that having done all thou mayst stand; Thou shalt not entertain ill thoughts with delight; nor roll the sweet morsel under thy tongue; Thou shalt not give consent to the wicked enticements of thy own flesh, but arm thyself with holy resolutions; Thou shalt do thy utmost endeavour to root out all evil concupiscence, & to keep that noisome puddle of original corruption, that body of death which thou carriest about with thee, from streaming & breaking forth, into inordinate desires, irregular words or actions, whereby God is offended, or thy neighbour injured; and lastly, thou shalt so bound thy appetite, & keep it within the limits of that condition wherein providence hath placed thee, that thou mayst without envying thy neighbour or desiring any thing that is his, quietly rest satisfied with thy own estate, and carefully mind the duties of thy calling, knowing that contentedness with what a man hath, is both the great duty of Christian Religion, and the greatest felicity of this life. That we may inquire into ourselves, it hath been plain by our actions, how full of concupiscence our hearts have been, when the Lusts of this Age have been as wild, and the practices as lose, as the Opinions; & men's minds have been as free to covet as they have been to think; when appetite has been boundless, and being goaded by ambition, has rambled over all Sacred & Civil Rights, & left nothing untouched that belonged to God or man, which the covetousness of wicked hearts could reach at; when we have coveted God's House as well as our neighbour's, & made conscience of nothing that might improve our estates; when instead of Self-denial, which is the principle of Christianity, Self-preservation has been set up, and Interest made our Idol; when we have been so far discontented at our present condition, that we have overrun all orders, & to mend our private fortunes have ruined the public; when we walk disorderly, and are immoderate in the use of our pleasures, and are taken up with the love of the world, and impure affections, and cannot relish the things of God; when we cannot endure one another, and require that of others we would not allow them, and set ourselves at irreconcilable distances; when we indulge ourselves in carnal joys, and have no compassion for our suffering Brethren; when our hopes depended on an arm of flesh, and the fear of man deterred us from our duty, so that we would not trust God for our delivery in the performance of our duty; when every small thing puts us into passion, and in our zeal we design a revenge on the person, more than a reformation of his vice; when we follow the guidance of a deluded conscience, and mistake both covetousness and ambition for zeal; when we prefer public mischief, before our own disappointments, and had rather Church & State should be endangered then our design should miscarry; when we hug temptations, and make much of our lusts, and lull them on the pillows of ease and security; when we wish for things unlawful, and take unlawful courses to get them; when all our desires are let out for carnal satisfactions, and we make it the great business of our lives to provide for our content, and yet can never be contented; When by our covetousness and evil concupiscences we have thus broken, not only this, but all God's Laws and Commandments, we may very well desire God's pardon for what is past, and his assistance for the time to come, in the Church's form; Lord have mercy upon us, and write all these thy Laws in our hearts, we beseech thee. FINIS. AN EXPLANATION Of the SACRAMENTS. The II. SACRAMENTS. Baptism. Go ye, and teach all Nations, baptising them in the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the holy Ghost. a Matt. 18. 19 Go ye into all the world, and preach the Gospel to every ereature. He that believeth, and is baptised, shall be saved; but he, that believeth not, shall be damned. b Mar. 16. 15, 16. The Lord's SUPPER. c Mat. 2●. 26, 27, 28. 1. Cor. 11. 23, 24, 25, 26, etc. THe Lord jesus the same night, in which he was betrayed, took bread: And when he had given thanks, he broke it, and gave it to his disciples, and said; Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken [given] for you: this do in remembrance of me. Likewise also [he took] the cup after supper, and when he had given thanks, he gave it to them, saying, Drink ye all of it: For this is my blood of the New Testament, which is shed for you [for many] for the remission of sins. This do ye as ●ft as ye drink it in remembrance of me. Of the SACRAMENTS. THe Sacraments, That is to say, Holy Rites or Ceremonies, or mysteries used in the Church, appointed by Christ himself. Now Sacrament is a military term, and signify that oath, whereby soldiers were wont to engage to be true and faithful to their General in the War against the enemies of their country: And thus it is with us Christians, who have vowed obedience to Christ, the Captain of our Salvation, and sworn to fight under his Banner, that we may by his strength overcome the world, the flesh, and the Devil. The Sacraments are but two, Holy Baptism, and the Holy Supper: which come in the place of Circumcision, and the jewish Passeover. By Baptism we are admitted into the bosom of the Church, and as it were entered into God's family, being by nature aliens from the Commonwealth of Israel; and of the children of wrath become heirs of the promise. The Supper affords us a spiritual repast, and by it we grow up, and are intimately united to Christ, and are preserved and fed to life everlasting. There are two things to be considered in a Sacrament; an outward Sign, and an inward Grace signified. Sign, in Baptism is Water, which washeth the filth of our body; the Thing signified is the Blood of Christ, whereby our souls are cleansed from the filth of sin. The outward Elements in the Supper are Bread and Wine, by which the strength of nature is repaired and maintained: The Things signified are the Body of jesus crucified and his Blood shed, which being partaken by Faith do heighten our graces, and nourish the souls of believers. Baptism d Tit. 3. 5. then is the laver of regeneration; and the Supper e 1. Cor. 10. 16. is the Communion of the Body and Blood of Christ. In a word the Sacraments are annexed to the Word of God, as the seals of the promise, conveyances of grace, and evidences of the Spirit, by which he doth effectually apply to believers the love of the Father, and the merits of the Son, assuring their hearts, confirming their Faith, fastening their Hope, and enlarging their Charity. Of BAPTISM. THe Institution of Baptism was after this manner. When Christ had with his Blood sealed the truth of his Doctrine, and purchased to himself a Church, i.e. a peculiar people, the chosen ones of God, whom he fore knew from all eternity; (for he was the f Rev. 13. 8. Lamb slain before the foundation of the world was laid;) and had made good this his purchase by his resurrection, in that the bands of death sell off, and he was released out of the prison of the grave, having paid the debt, for which he as our surety suffered; it was then convenient that this Church thus purchased, should be gathered, and the chosen ones be called, and converted to the saith by the preaching of the Word, and distinguished from the rest of the world by a profession of the Gospel, and the use of holy ordinances. Wherefore being himself to depart hence & to ascend to Heaven, he leaves his Disciples with instructions, how to propagate the faith, and to order the affairs of his spiritual Kingdom to the end of the world, and to proclaim throughout all quarters of the world, the good tidings of peace and pardon to all such as should by faith and repentance come in and give up their names to Christ; It being God's will g 1. Tim. 2. 4. that all should be said, and come to the knowledge of the truth. Whereupon he sends the Apostles to preach, and by Baptism i.e. by a solemn rite of washing with water, receive into the bosom of the Church as many as should profess faith in him; giving them this commission before his departue, as it is set down by the Evangelist, Go ye and teach all Nations baptising them, etc. Baptism having been formerly used by john the forerunner of our Saviour, and honoured by the example of our Saviour himself, who h joh. 3. 16, 17. at his Baptism was signally owned from Heaven for the Son of God, the Spirit also in the shape of a Dove lighting upon him. Our Saviour in these words, wherein he appoints the form and use of Baptism, partly commands, partly promises. The command hath in it a mission, Go: & a commission, teach, and Baptise. The promise is that whosoever believeth and is Baptised shall be saved. GO YE INTO ALL THE WORLD. Christ himself being sent to the lost sheep of the House of Israel, confined his own walk within the bounds of jewry; but at his death the vail of the Temple being rend in twain, and the partition wall broken down, all other Nations of the world were received into the covenant of grace, and made partakers of that salvation which the jews i Act. 13. 46. put from themselves. In order to this, the Apostles were furnished with the gift of tongues, to the end that they might discourse with all people in their own language, of which they gave a notable essay at the Feast of Pentecost; and not long after they had meeting, and agreed amongst themselves, what quarter of the world every one should take upon him as his Province, and accordingly travelled, some one or other of them, over all the parts (of the known world at least) there being yet remaining in several places of the East in Asia (as amongst the Chinese and the Indians,) and of the South in afric, (as amongst the Abyssines under the command of Prester john, that is, the Apostolic Prince, etc.) several monuments of the Apostles preaching. Nor are there wanting in America itself footsteps of the Gospel, as in the Island of the Holy Cross. AND TEACH ALL NATIONS, or preach the Gospel to every Creature. Now indeed does the Sun of righteousness, being the light that enlightens every one that comes into the world, set forth upon his course, and makes his compass from one end of Heaven to the other, darting forth the rays of his heavenly Doctrine to all Nations, and diffusing light and heat by the Apostles no otherwise then the Sun in the Firmament makes his passage through the twelve signs of the Zodiac. By this means Churches were planted up & down, Cities and countries converted to the Faith, and the sound of the Gospel went throughout the world. What an excellent story would the rest of the Acts of the Apostles have made, if they had been committed to writing, or preserved, as St. Paul's and Peter's were? whereas we have scarce any thing of them but fable, and the variety of changes since, and freity of the nations at present makes it almost impossible to find out the truth of their travels, acts, and strange successes. BAPTISING. This hath a double meaning: either Teach and Baptise, or Teach by Baptising. The former is thus; After you have instructed people in the faith, and made known to them the Gospel of Christ, and acquainted them with the will of God touching their salvation; receive them into the Church, and washing them with water assure them of the pardon of their sins, & engage them into a profession of the Christian Faith, and of a holy life. The later speaketh thus; Teach by Baptising, that is to say, preach the Gospel to all, and whomsoever you shall find willing to renounce their former error, to give up themselves to the obedience of the Gospel, make them my Disciples (which indeed is the importance of the Greek k 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 disciple them. word) by dipping or sprinkling them with water: by which ceremony (as by a peculiar badge) my Church which is the company of believers shall be distinguished from the rest of the world. From both we learn, that the administration of the Sacraments doth properly belong to those whose duty it is to preach the Gospel, to wit, the Ministers of God's Word; and that they are to Baptise, who are to Teach; the Sacraments being but the seals, and appendages of the doctrine. THEM. Men, and women, and children; persons of all conditions, sex, age; whole countries, whole cities, whole families, according as your preaching shall find success. And this no question was the practice of the Apostles at first, as hath been of the Church ever since, to admit all even little ones, (as Christ did suffer little children to come to him) and the Infants of believers to Baptism: for so Circumcision, in place of which Baptism came, was performed upon children of eight days old: And why should the sign of the Covenant be denied little babes, who are in Covenant with the God of their Fathers, who hath promised to be our God, & the God of ours? What an unkindness is it, that a parent should shut the gate of life against his child, and deprive it of the privilege of a new birth: seeing that believers children are born heirs of the promise, and have as good title to the spiritual blessing of their Fathers as they have to their temporal estate; if the word of God be good evidence. What hardhearted person can look upon its child no otherwise then a heathen brat, than the young one of some brute dam; I will not say lamb, or kid, or calf, which God appointed to be offered to him, and accepted in the jewish service. And will any one then be backward in bringing his child to the Temple, and presenting him to the Lord, or fear God's displeasure for so doing? O rigid course to pass a sentence of excommunication upon children, till they come to years of discretion. And why so? because they have no faith. Suppose they have not. The very Baptising a child makes him a Disciple, if thou understandest l 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, discipulos facite baptizando. Greek. And art afraid of making thy child a Disciple too soon? Besides, who dares to be so peremptory, and void of charity as to deny little ones faith; since faith though it do ordinarily come by hearing, yet it is a grace infused by God into the soul, capable of such infusion; nay, holy writings have left it upon record, that some children were sanctified in the womb, and that john the Baptist ●eapt in his mother's belly at the entrance of the Virgin Mother; & lays it down for a general observe, that God hath out of the mouths of babes & suckling● ordained strength, or prepared for himself a strong and solid praise. IN THE NAME, i.e. by virtue & force of a divine command and appointment, and by that authority which is delivered to the Son by the Father; and which through the Spirit, I do also impart to you my Ministers. Or into the Name; for so the words sound in the m 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Greek. i.e. into the profession of Christian Faith, and of Gospel-obedience. Now the highest point of Christian Doctrine is to believe in God, distinguished into three Persons, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. OF THE FATHER. Who made us, and begets us a new, by his word and ordinances. OF THE SON. Who redeemed us, and washes away our stains with his Blood. AND OF THE HOLY GHOST. Who sanctifies us; for we are born again of water, and the spirit. Each Person hath its peculiar operation, & is severally represented, in the holy rite of Baptism. For whereas by washing of water is meant the doing away of sin, the Father pardons sins, the Son purchased the pardon, the Spirit by faith applies that purchase. So then we are saved by the mercy of the Father, by the merit of the Son, and by the efficacy of the Spirit. This form of Baptism is one of the clearest proofs of Trinity in all Scripture; and indeed when our Saviour was Baptised of john, all Three did show themselves present. Christ himself whom john did Baptise, was the second Person; the Spirit descended upon him in the shape of a Dove; and the Father spoke out of the Cloud, saying, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. In the Command is set down the rite, or outward action. i.e. the washing with water. The Promise delivers the grace signified and conveyed by the action, to wit, remission of sins. The analogy betwixt the outward sign, and the inward grace lies in this; that, as Water being poured, or sprinkled on the body, washes off the filth; so the Blood of Christ, which was the Fountain opened for the cleansing of iniquity, doth purge the conscience, and do away sin, whether original, or actual, and present us clean without spot in the sight of the Father by the virtue of the Spirit. HE THAT BELIEVES AND IS BAPTISED, SHALL BE SAVED. Faith is the soul's hand, by which a man receives and applies to himself the benefits purchased by Christ. By Faith we are justified. Baptism is the laver of regeneration, the seal of the Covenant, the conveyance of Grace. They are both necessary, neither can either of them serve turn by itself; There must be an Ordinance to ground Faith upon and there must be a Faith to make the Ordinance effectual. For every appointment (as the just man doth) lives by Faith. Faith without Baptism, were a bucket without water; and Baptism void of Faith, were but a well without a bucket to draw up the waters of life. He that believes, by confessing his sins, and professing Faith resolves upon amendment of life, and gives himself up to Christ's discipline; and then is baptised, obliges himself by vow, & enters into Covenant of strict walking with God, He shall be saved from his sins, & the punishments due to them; being free as well from the power, as from the guilt. His nature shall be renewed; and by the continual supplies of grace (if he make good use of it) he shall be enabled more and more to withstand temptations, & get ground of his lusts; he shall be put into a state of salvation, and every day set forward on his way to bliss through the paths of holiness, till with Christ at last he arrive at perfection, & have his grace changed into glory. HE THAT BELIEVETH NOT SHALL BE DAMNED This is a threat annexed to the promise, which holds good by the law of contraries; for if those that believe shall be saved, than those that believe not must expect nothing but damnation. We must observe, that, there is not added here any mention of Baptism, because unbelief itself is enough to shut the gates of Heaven against any one, and send him to Hell: wherefore it is not said he that believes not, and is not Baptised; for the unbeliever, whether he be baptised or no, is liable to this sentence; If he hath been baptised, it will be looked upon as a formal cheat, & a cloak to disguise his hypocrisy: And if he hath not, the very neglect of Baptism serves for an open discovery of his unbelief; so that either way he aggravates his sin, by being on one side hypocrite, on the other profane. The meaning of these words than is this. But on the contrary, whosoever doth not with true Faith entertain my Doctrine, and with sure purpose of mind resolve on the keeping my Commands, but doth either so far disbelieve Christian Truth, that he will not so much as take upon him the outward profession of it, or having been baptised, is of loose opinions and practices, and disparages his profession with foul errors, or wicked manners: such an one will have no benefit by Christ, no share in the salvation wrought by him, but brings upon himself the guilt of his own sins, and continues still in a state of wrath, and perishing in his unbelief, will assuredly be cast into everlasting torments. If the One Sacrament may be termed the Bosom of the Church, by which we are entered, and have admittance into the fellowship of the Saints; The Other may not without reason be called the Church's Breast, by which we are nourished to a spiritual growth, and are refreshed and fed to life everlasting. Of the Lord's SUPPER. AFter that our Saviour had sufficiently made known by his Doctrine the will of God concerning man's salvation, and proved by many miracles, that he was the Son of God that came down from Heaven, to the end that having put on our nature, he might in our stead satisfy the Law, and undergo the punishments due to us for our sins, that we through Faith in him might live; It pleased him (that he might leave with us the Symbols of his presence for ever, and preserve the memory of his sufferings afresh in the mind of the faithful) to prefigure his Death by a Sacrament, appointing Bread, & Wine, the usual supplies of life, for the representing of his sacred Body, which was broken on the Cross, and torn with the nails and the spear: and his Blood which trickled from his sacred Head by the pricking of the thorns, gushed out of his hands & feet when he was nailed to the tree, and broke forth of his side when he was wounded with the lance, and plentifully streamed forth out of every vein of his sacred Body, when he was cruelly scourged with whips. Now his Body thus broken, and his Blood thus shed, do no less feed a believers soul, and improve the force of grace, than the body is nourished, and nature's strength repaired by Bread and Wine. But this hath a spiritual meaning; not that any one doth eat the very flesh of Christ, and drink his very blood in a gross manner, for that will be as absured to think as 'tis savage to do; or that Christ can be received any other way then by Faith, for 'tis a point of Faith that the Body of Christ did go up to Heaven, and there is to remain till the last day; and 'tis contrary to very reason, to say, that the same Body can at the same time be in several places; and to bring to pass contradictions, is a thing out of the power of omnipotence itself; not to say that it is plain even to our outward senses, that the elements of bread and wine do still remain after consecration the same in substance as well as in colour, and accidents as they were before. In fine it would indeed be no Sacrament, if the signs should change their nature, and the thing signified be itself really there; for a Sacrament is nothing else but a figure, and representation of some thing that is absent, exhibiting to the understanding that which cannot be seen with the eye; and by outward actions resembling the inward virtue and efficacy of that thing of which it is a sign. This sacred Rite is called the Holy Supper, either by the way of Metaphor to denote the communion, and fellowship which the Saints have with one another (for which reason we also usually term it with the Apostle Paul, n 1. Cor. 10. 16. the Communion.) The whole family meeting together at that time, when all the business of the day is over, to refresh themselves, and take their repast. Nor is it otherwise with the household of Faith, who though employed in several dwellings and duties of life, yet as members of one and the same body, whereof Christ is the Head, are united to one another by the same spirit, & fed with the same spiritual food. So that the Mystical body of the Church is made up of many Saints, just as the bread itself of many corns, and the wine of drops; whence 'tis frequently by the Greek Fathers called 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 i.e. the gathering together of the Saints, whither (as some Interpreters would have it) that place hath allusion, o Mat. 24. 28. where the car case is, that is, the crucified Body of Christ, thither shall the eagles, the quicksighted, highflown believers, be gathered together. Or, out of a more particular respect to the Passeover, into the place and stead whereof this Sacrament came; as the other succeeded circumcision: for the jews were wont by God's appointment yearly to celebrate a Feast, whereon at evening in each household they slew a Lamb, dressed it, and eat it together in remembrance of the deliverance from the Egyptian slavery, and from the Angel, who striking all the first born of Egypt passed over the houses of the Israelites, who for that purpose had according to that p Exod. 12. 22. command dashed the Blood of the Lamb upon the lintel of the door. Now Christ being the substance was to put an end to all ceremonies, & came to make one perfect sacrifice once for all, who in that he died, died but once, being the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sins of the world; and his death we are to remember in these pledges of his love, whereby he hath delivered us from a spiritual slavery, and wrought salvation for us. And indeed in that very nick of time when our Saviour had finished the Paschal Supper with his Disciples, he appointed this as to abide for ever in the room of the other. The Lord's Supper it is styled, because appointed by the Lord Jesus, and represents him to be fed on by Faith. The words of the Scripture, wherein the Institution is set down, express both time when, and manner how it was performed: the manner again delilivers partly what he did, partly what he said, in consecrating the bread first, and then the cup. The Institution of this Sacrament is described by the author, time, and manner. The Author, the Lord jesus. The Time, the night wherein he was betrayed. the Manner consists of two parts, showing partly what he did, partly what he said; and that severally of these two several signs, by which he would represent his Body and Blood. For this Holy Supper was to consist of spiritual meat and drink; as men use both to eat and drink in their other ordinary meals. The Bread is the sign of his Body; the Cup of his Blood. First, as to the Bread what did he? He took it, he blessed it, he broke it, he gave it. What said he? Take, eat; this is my Body. Again for the Cup, what did he? he took it, he blessed it, he gave it. What said he? Drink ye all of it; for this is my Blood, etc. Now let us go over each part again, and explain it more fully. THE LORD JESUS. Who by the merit of his Passion, and at the price of his Blood purchased for us Salvation, and for himself glory, and a Name above every Name, that he might become Head of the Church, and to him might be given all power from the Father. He alone has authority to appoint Sacraments, and order the affairs of his Church, by his word and spirit; whereby he hath impowerd his Ministers to act in his Name, & to dispense his ordinances even to the end of the world. IN THE NIGHT. For it was a Supper, which he intended, and 'twas at supper or rather after supper; when he had with his Disciples about him, eaten the Passeover, the type of himself, who was the Lamb slain before the foundation of the world; when he said at the Table, One of you shall betray me, and discovered his betrayer by giving him a sop, which some think was no other than a piece of consecrated bread. Nay, the selfsame night, IN WHICH HE WAS BETRAYED by judas with a kiss, bringing a multitude along with him, armed with swords, and staves, the rage of the rulers, and the curses of the priests, to lay wicked hands on him, after he had sweat drops of blood in his agony, and poured out his Soul in Prayer, being sad even to death, in a garden, where he made the praeludium to his Passion. BREAD, by which the heart of man is strengthened (which is therefore called the staff of life) is made use of to represent the Body of Christ, who q joh. 6. 41. was the bread which came down from Heaven, by which souls are fed to life everlasting. HE TOOK IT. That he might by his example show the Ministers of his word, what they are to do, when they invite their people to the holy Table; himself doth in a solemn manner begin the ceremonies; taking the bread, i.e. lifting it up, and holding it in his hand, which amongst the jews was then the fashion observed by the master of the house. AND GIVING THANKS. We do not read anywhere, that Christ ever sat down to meat without Thanksgiving; which especially before the Holy Supper, is necessary, it being for that reason called the Eucharist. And surely the death of Christ, which is here set forth, was the greatest blessing, that ever befell mankind. Or Blessing it. The meaning may be, that by consecrating it, he did set it aside from common use, and praying for a special blessing upon it, that it may become an effectual means of grace, he stamped upon it a kind of reverence, which was not due to it before. HE BROKE IT. Whence this mystery is also called the breaking of bread: he divided it into several pieces, that there might be the better distribution of it amongst the company at table. AND GAVE IT, i.e. reaching out his hand he set to every one his part, and bestowed it amongst them. TO THE DISCIPLES. Who did then represent the whole Church of Christ, and society of the faithful, both men, and women, who should give up themselves to the discipline of Christ, and take upon them the profession of the Gospel; not so much as judas excepted, though Christ well knew, what was in his heart. Wherefore by Christ's own example Ministers might learn, that none should be excluded, and kept from the table, where Christ himself entertained the Traitor, the Thief, and the Apostate judas. All are invited to this heavenly banquet, and if any one crowd in, having not on his wedding garment, he does it at his own peril. r 1 Cor, 11. 18. 'Tis the Apostle's rule in this case, that a man examine himself and so come. He that shall censure his brother as unworthy to share in this divine worship, to be sure by his want of charity makes himself unfit to be there, and uncapable of the blessing; charity being as necessary a qualification as repentance; and we are out of charity to suppose that any scandalous liver, or notorious offender, would venture upon these sacred mysteries without having repent him of his sins, since he is told aforehand, that by coming unworthily he will but eat and drink damnation to himself, delivering himself into Satan's power, filling up the measure of his sins, and hastening his own destruction, as it fared with judas. AND SAID. Here follow the words of consecration; for this too, as well as the common s 1 Tim. 4. 5. food, is sanctified by the word and Prayer. It was not enough to have broken and given it, unless he had also said, Take, eat. God is wont to instruct all our senses, as he requires s Heb. 5. 14. to have them all exercised in holy things. The outward Sign is proposed to the eye, the Word to the ear, so that what the eagle-sighted Evangelist t 1 joh. 1. 1. saith of the Incarnation of Christ, may have here a peculiar place; That which we have seen, That which we have heard, and our hands have handled of the word of life, declare we unto you: and accordingly it follows. TAKE. Stretching out the hand of Faith, lay hold on life, embrace salvation offered. Take, for ye have it not by nature in yourselves; it is the gift of God through Christ, who took upon him the Humane nature, that he through it might convey to men the power, & virtue of the Divine nature. He took, that he might give; we take to enjoy. Take it, not snatch it, take it with reverence and such devotion of mind, and body, as becomes so great a mystery; and this indeed has always been the custom of the Church to use an humble posture upon this occasion, and receive kneeling. EAT. Apply to your souls the benefit of my death, feed upon me and be transformed into my likeness, that ye may be united to me, and I may live in you, no otherwise then the meat, which we daily eat, is turned into juice and blood, and intimately adhering to us, becomes part of us. THIS IS MY BODY. This i.e. this bread, for though they disagree in gender, yet who is so unskiled in Grammar, as not to know that the Relative this, may agree either with the former Antecedent, bread, or with the later, body? or This mystery and Sacrament, This action of my breaking, and giving, of your taking and eating. IS MY BODY. Is the representation of my death, & the assurance of salvation to those that believe; as we commonly say of a writing in Law, This is my estate. i.e. this gives me a title to such a house and land, and by a sure conveyance makes me right owner of it, as if the house, and fields, and meadows were really included in the parchment. Such a manner of speech is frequently used in Scripture; as where 'tis v 1 Cor 10. 4. said the rock was Christ, which to take properly and strictly, as the words sound, were absurd; there being no more meant by it then this, that the rock was the type, and emblem of Christ. So here that the bread is Christ's Body, is not to be understood in a gross sense, as if that the substance of the bread were changed into the very flesh of Christ; but that whosoever doth with faith receive these sacred Symbols, doth truly and to all intents partake of the benefits, which Christ hath purchased for us by his death, and is closely united to Christ, and grows in grace, even as our bodily food being taken in does pass into our nature, and give nourishment, and increase, to all the parts of our body. WHICH IS BROKEN, or Given. The u Frequens Enallage; ut 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 venturus, etc. present Tense here is put for the future, which shortly shall be broken; for Christ was yet not crucified, but spoke these words before his Passion. Or the whole life of Christ having been nothing else but an enduring of hardship, it may be understood not only of the cross, and the nails; the scourges and the thorns, wherewith his sacred Body was rend, and torn: but also of hunger and cold, fasting and watching, grief and pains, which he underwent all along from the Cradle to the Cross: or in a mystical and Sacramental sense; which by this breaking & giving of the bread is represented & shown forth as broken and given for them. For the very actions used by our Saviour at this Supper have a spiritual meaning, and do allude to some mystery. He took bread; and so he took to himself a body, that he might become bone of our bone, and flesh of our flesh; and suffer in the flesh the punishment due to us; as it is w Heb. 10. 5. written, Burnt offerings, and sacrifices thou wouldst not; but a body thou hast prepared for me. He blessed it, i.e. he set it aside from common use: in like manner, the mass of flesh and blood, which he would put on, he separated from the defilement of our nature, that he might after an extraordinary manner, be born of the Blessed Virgin without sin. He broke it, Just so was that his body used, cut and mangled with cruel whips, bruised with blows, and buffets, gashed with a spear, pricked with the thorns, and bored with nails; that we by his stripes might be healed. He gave it; hanging on the Cross, with stretched arms & bowed head, he seemed to invite all men to the well of salvation, which was opened in his side, for the cleansing of iniquity, and the quenching of spiritual thirst; laying down his life, like the good shepherd for the ransom of souls. And his Father gave him, so loving the world, that he gave his only begotten Son to the death, that whosoever believes in him might have everlasting life. FOR YOU. For your sake, upon your account, to your benefit; for the appeasing God's wrath, satisfying his justice, and obtaining his mercy; for the redemption of your souls, the purchase of pardon and grace, and the assurance of salvation, that you by my death may live, by my wounds you may be cured, and by receiving me thus offered unto you, may be received into favour. Or in your stead. Behold I suffer, what you should have suffered; I as your Mediator stand betwixt you and God, betwixt your sins and his wrath, and undergo the penalty which was due to you: my body is torn and mangled, and my soul poured out to death, not for any thing that I have done amiss; for there hath been no iniquity found in my hand, nor guile in my mouth: but I am that Lamb of God slain from the beginning of the world; I am that good shepherd of souls, that lay down my life for my sheep. Thus broken and given, thus delivered for you, and to you, I seal pardon of sins to your hearts, I improve grace, supply strength, & feed your souls to life everlasting. Broken or Given, as if it were all one; for this heavenly Bread was given, that it might be broken, 'twas broken, that it might be given. Christ could not have suffered for us, had he not had a body given him for that purpose, nor could that body have done us good, or furnished us with spiritual nourishment, had it not been broken; Had not Christ died, we could not be sure of living: As it is with the bread itself, which is the Symbol of his Body. The corn must be first cut down, and threshed, and winnowed, and ground, and sifted, & kneaded, and baked with a hot oven, before it can become bread. THIS DO YE. These words either have reference to the actions of the Disciples, who took the bread which Christ gave them, and eat it; and so they belong to all Christians in general, to the whole company of believers according as the Church doth in more words deliver it; Take, and eat this in remembrance that Christ died for thee, & feed on him in thy heart, with Faith and thanksgiving. And so of the Cup afterward 'tis said; This do ye as oft as ye drink it, i.e. when ever ye drink it, drink it in remembrance of me. Or to Christ's own actions, who broke it, and gave it; and thus they imply a special charge to the Officers of the Church, the Ministers of the Gospel, and Preachers of the Word, such as also were these Disciples; as if he should have said, you are Apostles, with whom I leave the care of planting Churches, and preaching the Gospel, whom I trust for the management of the affairs of my Kingdom, and duly administering the Sacraments: wherefore I charge, and require of you, that in celebrating this mystery you follow my example, and do no otherwise than you have seen me do before you; that it may remain pure to all succeeding ages, according to this first institution. And hither St. Paul x 1 Cor. 11. 23. in this case makes his appeal, where he discourses of the Holy Supper, That which I received that deliver I unto you, how the Lord jesus, etc. This or Thus, This which I have done, or thus, as I have done now in your company, do ye, and all from hence forward that derive authority from you, in your several assemblies; take bread and bless it, and break it, and give it about to those who rightly prepared come to the holy Table, and use these words of consecration, which I have done to you. The y 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Greek is, make this, hence it is an ordinary phrase amongst the Popish Priests, when they perform Mass to say, that they do make the Body of the Lord; thinking possibly that the Doctrine of Transubstantiation is much advantaged by the word of making, which in the Greek is indifferently applied to all manner of actions, and the other z 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. which signifies to do would have been very improper and not fit to be used in this place. THIS DO YE. The word will also in the a Psal. 66. 15. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. quod antea. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Si● Virg. C●m faciam vitulâ. Latin and Hebrew carry a sense of sacrificing; and then 'twould intimate, that our Saviour's death was our peace-offering; whereby God's wrath conceived against sin was atoned, and his justice satisfied, we being cleansed by the sprinkling of his Blood. The Papists therefore call the Mass a Sacrifice without Blood, and the holy Table strictly and properly without any Metaphor, an Altar. 'Tis true, we do here represent and commemorate the death of Christ; and when we come to partake of these Mysteries, we may use the b Psal. 116. 12. Psalmist's words; What shall I render to the Lord for all his benefits towards me? I will take the Cup of Salvation, and call upon the Name of the Lord: I will Sacrifice unto thee the Sacrifice of thanksgiving, and call upon the Name of the Lord: I will pay my vows unto the Lord, now in the presence of all his people. But he having offered once a perfect Sacrifice for the taking away of sin, and cried upon the Cross, It is finished, and in that he died, dies no more: 'twere absurd to think, there needed a repetition of that act, which in itself was all-sufficient, Christ's Blood being of an infinite value, as it immediately follows in the same Psalm, Precious in the sight of the Lord is the death of his Saints: A c 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. word peculiar to Christ, as in the fourth Psalm, He hath set apart the holy one for himself, and in the 16. Thou shalt not suffer thine holy one to see corruption, meaning Christ. Besides to what purpose is it to ground an unreasonable doctrine upon the nicety of a word, which in ordinary plain meaning signifies but this, do so hereafter as ye now do; or do ye in your companies, what ye have seen me now do in mine. IN REMEMBRANCE OF ME. For a memorial of me, and a monument of my love, who have not spared my life for your sakes, and with a sense of gratitude to keep up the memory of my bitter death, which I as your surety upon your account underwent, and the benefit whereof you will receive by believing on me, by eating my flesh, and drinking my Blood, and becoming one with me. Or d 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in meam (potius quam mei) recordationem. for my remembrance; appointed by me to be one of my sacred ordinances, to be kept up in the practice of the Church till my second coming in the clouds, as ye will see me go away. Wherefore in the mean while to leave behind me a remembrance, and to bear up your hearts in Faith, that what I have suffered hath been out of love to you, and that those who in following ages shall not see me in the flesh, yet may have some further assurance than my bare word, I have provided this to be a standing ordinance in the Church, whereby I may be remembered to the end of the world. LIKEWISE ALSO HE TOOK THE CUP. Now follows the other part of this Sacrament, to wit, the consecration of the Cup; for it would not be a complete meal, were there not spiritual drink as well as meat, the Blood of Christ being as necessary to quench the thirst, as his flesh to satisfy the hunger of a believing soul, that hungers and thirsts after righteousness. But first the Bread and then the Cup. Why? because there must be a body broken, before there could be blood spilt. First bread to strengthen, and then wine to refresh the heart. Again the Cup last as of great importance; for the flesh could have profited nothing without the blood, and God is said e Act. 20. 28. to have redeemed his Church with his Blood; nor does he only redeem us with the shedding of his blood, but wash us by the sprinkling of it upon our consciences from dead works▪ and preserve his Church spotless till the great day. Nay the author to the Hebrews f Heb. 9 22. observes, that in the old Law there was no atonement for sin without blood: for in the blood lay the life, & the life of the sinner was to answer for his sin: wherefore 'twas not so much the flesh of the sacrifice, (which was partly burnt into ashes, partly eaten by the Priest or congregation) that appeased God's wrath, as the blood, which was sprinkled round the Altar. Nor did the eating of the Passeover (which was the type of this Supper) secure the Israelites from the destroying Angel, but the blood which was struck upon the lintel of the door. Nor can the Papists plead the no necessity of administering the Cup, because the children of Israel in the celebration of their Passeover, and the Priests and people in their sacrifices only eat of the flesh of the lamb or bullock, and not drank the blood, but either spilt it, or sprinkled it up & down. For first we have here Christ's express command, Drink ye all of it; whereas they were bid to the contrary. And then, which is the main thing. Christ's merit (as was said before) lay most in his blood, so that to give ourselves an interest in his sufferings, we must partake of his blood as well as of his body. But why is the Symbol of his precious Blood called a Cup, whereas that by which his holy Body is represented is plainly termed Bread? now bread and cup are not direct opposites, nor answer one another, but bread and wine. This by the Papists own confession must be allowed to be a figure (called Metonymy) of the vessel containing for the liquor contained, the Cup for the wine in the cup. Now therefore if the Cup be not really turned into the blood of Christ, neither is the bread changed into flesh. For just as it's said of the bread, This is my Body, so he says of the Cup, This is my Blood. And if there be a figure in one place, why not in both? or can we suppose, that our Saviour in a thing of so great concernment, would not have spoke properly here too, as he did before. But the truth on't is, we should on all hands run ourselves into a world of absurdities, should we take words strictly as they sound, and not allow them a fair meaning according to popular use, and custom of speaking. For by this means we should have cities with walls up to heaven, Christ would be turned into one rock, Peter into another, Herod would be Metamorphosed into a fox, and Ovid's fables would hardly seem more strange than Scripture. But Rhetoric teacheth us the convenience, and vulgar custom the necessity of using figures, & no question but our Saviour made use of the liberty in this sacred Institution. Now the ground of this figure whereby the Cup is put for the wine (whereas the other part of the Sacrament is properly expressed by the name of bread) may be this; because bread being of a solid substance is of itself easily laid hold on, and taken up with the hands: but wine is of a fluid & liquid nature, so that it cannot be meddled with to any use, unless it be first put into some vessel, as a cup, etc. Likewise also. These two particles imply, partly that Christ did as well appoint the use of wine as of bread to make this holy Supper an entire Sacrament; in so much that, if either should be taken away, the mystery would be maimed and imperfect; partly that he did in like manner, and after the self same fashion, consecreate the Symbol of his precious Blood, as he did that of his holy Body, using the same actions, and almost words; for as he took the bread, and gave thanks, and gave it to his Disciples, bidding them eat, and telling them, that is was his Body, which was broken for them, and charging them to do it in remembrance of him: Just so he took the Cup too, and gave thanks, and gave it amongst them and bid them drink, and told them withal, that it was his Blood, which was shed for them, and charged them to do it in remembrance of him. Some little difference we may meet with, both in the actions and in the words, either by adding or leaving out. First here is added a more special note of the time, when the cup was appointed, to wit, after Supper, which is but generally expressed in the other part to be the night in which he was betrayed: And a more punctual command, when he says, Drink ye all of it; contenting himself of the bread to have said only, Eat it. with a particular declaration of the nature of this Sacrament, where he tells them, 'twas the Blood of the New Testament, which he says not of his Body; and of the use and end for which it was appointed, for the remission of sins. i.e. for sealing that pardon, which he purchased by his blood. Besides a precept, at least an advice of frequent receiving, employed in those words, As oft as ye drink it. Then here is left out the action of pouring out of the wine, which answers the breaking of bread; for he broke the breaa, but it is not said that he poured out the wine. So that it may be supposed the cup was full of wine, when he took it. Yet the words of consecration do make out this action also; for as he said, This is my Body which is broken for you; so he saith, This is my Blood which is shed for you. And lastly, he says of the bread, Take, eat; but of the wine only, Drink; which yet they could not do without taking it. Now herein perhaps lay the difference, that of the bread being broken into small pieces, every one could at once take his part, and all partake together at the same time: but the cup being not capable of such a partition, they handed it to one another, the second staying till the first had drunk, and so on to the last. The Cup, to wit, being full of wine; for so himself says afterward, that he would drink no more of the fruit of the vine, till he drank it new with them in the kingdom of his Father. Now wine was the fittest to express the nature and use of the Blood of Christ, it being the noblest liquor, that which most refreshes the heart of man. Give wine (as the Proverb g Prov. 31. 6. saith) to the sad in heart, that they may forget their misery. Wine was used also in the curing of wounds, as 'tis said h Luk. 10. 34. of the good Samaritan, that taking the man ●hat had lighted amongst thiefs into his care, he poured wine and oil into his wounds; the wine to search and cleanse, as well as the oil to heal and skin them: Christ's Blood hath the same virtue and efficacy to quench the spiritual thirst of a sinner, who being scorched with his guilt, longs for Christ's righteousness, as the hart panteth after the water-brooks; to cheer the spirits which lie drooping under the sense of sin; to supply new strength to a Christian believer, that he shall rejoice to run his course as a Giant refreshed with wine; and lastly to wash the defiled conscience, and cleans the foul running sores of the soul, that it may be fitted for the oil of the spirit the comforter. Besides Christ himself is often compared to a Vine, whereof all the faithful are branches, I am the Vine (says he ⁱ) and my Father the Husbandman; and he is said to have trod the winepress of God's wrath alone for us. Yet in case of necessity, where wine cannot be had, other drinks either natural or made (according to the custom of the country) may be used, as water, beer, etc. Now as that bread which came down from heaven was the type of his body, so was the water which came out of the rock, and followed the Israelites through the wilderness, an emblem of his Blood; for k 1 Cor. 10. 4. that rock was Christ. He took it. He lifted it from the table, and held it in his hand, either having first poured wine into it out of some bigger vessel or flagon, or else with an intent to power wine into it; as the word shed forth, or poured out doth intimate; for the sign was to represent the thing signified. AFTER SUPPER. At the end of Supper, when they had done eating, whereas the other part of this Sacrament was appointed in Supper time, as they were eating. Or else 'tis not unlikely, that this particle of time may belong as well to the bread as to the cup; that the celebration of the whole mystery was not performed, till they had made an end of the Paschal Supper, into the room and place whereof this was from thence forward to succeed and be of perpetual use in the Church. AND WHEN HE HAD GIVEN THANKS, or blessed it. For the Apostle l 1 Cor. 10. 16. calls it, The Cup of blessing which we bless; i.e. before he appointed it to be a sign of his Blood, he sanctified it by the word and prayer, and begging a blessing upon it, separated it from common use: using perhaps the ordinary grace, which amongst the jews, the Master of the house did at meals make use of; for no question but our Saviour here alludes to their custom, who at the end of dinner or supper, after thanks was given, drank round the whole company that was at table of the grace-cup, the Master of the house beginning to the rest. HE GAVE IT. He set it down amongst them, that they might one after another take the cup and drink; or perhaps put it into the hand of some one, that he might give it about to his fellows. TO THEM. The Apostles, to wit, or disciples, who at that time stood for the whole Church; and consequently to all believers whomsoever, that make profession of the Christian Faith. SAYING. Speaking almost the same words, as he used before concerning the bread, that he might declare his own purpose in the institution of this mystery, and their benefit who should partake of it. DRINK YE. With Faith receive this Sacrament of my Blood, that like your natural drink, it being taken into your souls may refresh your souls, quicken your graces, and keep you to life everlasting. ALL OF IT. Every one some: for the bread was indeed broken into several portions, but the cup could not be so divided; wherefore they were to part it among them, every one drinking so, that there might be left for the rest of the company. FOR. That which before was delivered in a declarative way as a bare narration, eat; this is my Body, is here brought in as a reason. Drink, for this is my Blood. Which shows to what end and purpose the cup was appointed, and how much it concerns believers to drink of it, since by it is conveyed the forgiveness of sins, the main virtue and effect of Christ's Blood being spilt. THIS. To wit, this cup which I do now deliver to you, this wine which you are now about to drink, or this action of my giving and your drinking the holy Cup. IS MY BLOOD. That is, doth signify and represent my Blood; and not only so, but gives out also and conveys my Blood, and the benefits thereof; so that it being received with Faith shall prove as much to your advantage, and do your souls as much good, as if you did really drink my very Blood, even as one finds himself refreshed with wine which he drinks. OF THE NEW TESTAMENT. Upon Gospel terms, and the account of grace; whereas formerly in the time of the Old Testament under the Law they were used to make atonement for their sins with the blood of bulls and goats: now Christ the Son of God was come in the flesh, who was the substance, that all those shadows belonged to, and the truth prefigured by those Levitical types, all those rites of sacrificing were to have an end; when once he had offered up a perfect sacrifice, blotting out the hand-writing of the Law, and sealing a New Covenant of grace in his Blood: for the word m 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 For 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. will bear that sense too; and we know 'twas the usual custom of making and ratifying Covenants by sacrifice, as betwixt n Gen. 15. 28. God and Abraham, o Gen. 21. 27. Abraham and the King of the Philistines, when they struck a league of friendship; and possibly that heap of stones, which was p Gen. 31. 44. raised by jacob and his Father in law Laban, and was afterward called Gilead, might serve also for that purpose. Nay Homer takes notice of it, as practised amongst the Heathen. But the Greek does more properly denote the Testament or last will, by which a man doth before his death dispose of his estate, & bequeath legacies, which being ambulatory and uncertain as long as one lives, is never valid or of force, q Heb. 9 17. till the Testator be dead: nor could we have been the better for Christ, or have had an effectual enjoyment of his benefits, had he not died, and by his death sealed as well as made the purchase. By the New Testament here then is meant the will of God the Father, concerning the Salvation of mankind; which in former time he had made his people acquainted with, by visions, and Prophecies, and other dark representations; but in the fullness of time, by sending his own Son, made man after our own likeness; when the wisdom of the Father dwelled amongst the children of men, and the word became flesh; gave out a full discovery thereof in the light of the Gospel and the clear manifestations of his grace: And that Covenant of grace, which by the death of his Son (our Mediator, who reconciled us with the Father) he entered into with men, being made upon other terms then the Law required, which says, Do this and live, and calls for an exact obedience, which therefore it was impossible for men to keep; whereas the conditions we are tied to under the Covenant of grace are repentance only and Faith; (by which denying our own righteousness, we depend upon the merits of a crucified Saviour,) according as they are proposed both in the Old Testament, r Hab 2. 4. the Justice shall live by Faith. And in the New, s Mar. 16. 16. He that believes shall be saved; That Covenant of Grace, I say, is not without good reason styled the New Covenant, according as God himself promised by the Prophet even in the time of the Law, that he would make a new Covenant. I will be their God ( s jer. 31▪ 33. says he) and they shall be my people. And seeing that Christ's death hath put an end to the sacrifices formerly used for the ratifying of that Covenant, though in substance God's Covenant both with the jews, and with the Christians be all one, yet in respect of a different administration, and a new and clearer dispensation, This may well be called the New Testament, That the Old. WHICH IS SHED. Truly, yet mystically and spiritually in this Sacrament, as sure as the wine (by which it is represented) is now poured out into the cup for your use. For it cannot be conceived, that when he spoke these words he did really bleed, it being before his Passion; but he having taken our flesh, and our blood on no other purpose, then to break the one, and shed the other for us, he speaks of that as already done, which was in God's everlasting counsel decreed to be done, in which sense he is called t Rev. 13. 8. the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world. Which is shed then is no more, than which is to be shed, which shortly will be shed, and which partly had already been shed; for Christ spilt not all his Blood at once, but at several times; as at his Circumcision, when he paid the first fruits of it to the Lord; in his agony, when he sweat clots of blood; at his scourging, when he was cut with whips; at his crowning, when the thorns pierced his sacred head, and the scoffs more his heart; and lastly at his Passion, when the nails fastened his hands and feet to the Cross, & the lance gored his blessed side, so that there gushed out water and blood, in such streams, that his most holy Soul together with his Blood left him. FOR YOU. In your stead, and to your benefit. For I having taken upon me the office of a Mediator, betwixt God and men, am to undergo that punishment which was due to to man for sin: wherefore because by the decree and Law of God there is no atonement without shedding of blood; I also am ready to power forth mine, that you being sprinkled with it, may be acquitted from the sentence of the Law, and justified in the sight of God. Seeing that it will be but just, that what I your surety have done and suffered in your behalf, should satisfy the justice of God, and discharge you from guilt and the penalty of the Law, all one as if you yourselves had done and suffered it. One Evangelist hath it, For many, or v 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. rather Concerning many; and than it may be understood of things, to wit, Sins which Christ's Blood did atone; Wrath, which it appeased; the Law, which it satisfied; Gild, which it frees from; Filth, which it washes off; and the Ceremonies, which it put an end to. And to all these purposes was Christ's Blood shed. But if it be taken for persons, it may have the same meaning as that, For you: The Greek u 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. word frequently importing the whole multitude, & so the Apostle w Rom. 5. 19 to the Romans lays the comparison betwixt the old Adam & the new; that as by one man's disobedience, all men became sinners, so much more by Christ's obedience should many be made righteous. Now the advantage of this comparision would come to nothing, were not Christ's death of as universal influence, for the justification of mankind; as Adam's sin, was for the condemnation, though indeed the benefit thereof do redound to none, but those who do with true Faith lay hold upon it, i.e. to the elect alone, and true believers; who yet (in respect of the rest that perish in their sins through unbelief) cannot be called the many. For many are called but few are chosen. And no question but it was Christ's intent to taste death (as 'tis said x Heb. 2. 9 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. ) for every man, none excepted, but who would wilfully run into damnation by despising so great salvation. And that the many may thus mean the All, is clear by y joh. 3. 16. 1, 29. 1 joh. 2. 2. other places, where a word of the largest extent is used, to wit, the world, which cannot in propriety of speech be applied to signify the Church only; God so loved the world, that he gave his Son. and Christ is the Lamb of God that takes away the sins of the world. and is a propitiation not for our sins alone, viz. that are believers, but for the sins of the whole world also. FOR THE REMISSION OF SINS. Whereas the Law doth pronounce sentence of death upon those that transgress it; for the soul that sinneth shall die; And all men are concluded under sin; for z Rom. 3. 10. there is none righteous, no not one; and a Rom. 3. ●0. in thy sight shall no flesh be justified; It was impossible for one that was mere man either to perform the Law, or avoid the punishment, had not Christ (who was God as well as Man) interposed. For no man was ever either by gifts of nature, or by the supplies of grace, advanced to that pitch of perfection, that he could perform an exact obedience to all God's commands; We have sinned all (saith b Rom. 3. 23. 1 joh. 1. 10. the Apostle) and if we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and there is no truth in us. Nay, supposing one's life never so spotless; yet cannot we make amends for that natural uncleanness of original sin, which we are born with, and which as soon as we live forfeits us to death, according to the threatening, c Gen. 2, 17. In the day that thou eatest thereof, thou shalt die the death. Wherefore what was wanting in us, Christ made up with the merits of his obedience, who having fulfilled the Law, and being in himself altogether free from guilt, became d Cor. 5. 21. sin for us, and was reckoned amongst transgressors, that we might be justified by his blood, and sanctified by his spirit. Our sins then are by his death done away, so that if we lay hold on him by Faith, that we may receive the benefit of his death, we that are guilty must be acquitted, because our surety that was guiltless was condemned; we shall live, because he died; we shall escape the wrath which he underwent; and our sins must be forforgiven, because his innocency was censured; so that now God stands obliged by his faithfulness and justice too, to forgive us our sins, and cleanse us from all iniquity. He is but faithful when he keeps his word, and performs his part of that Covenant, which he made with us in his Son; and he is but just, when our surety has paid the debt, to discharge us. Now this Sacrament being a seal of the Covenant doth assure us of that forgiveness; and seals to our heart by the sprinkling of blood, and the operation of the spirit a pardon of our sins, and does withal oblige us to Faith and repentance, which are the conditions, without which we must not expect forgiveness, and to a new obedience, which is the surest sign and evidence, that we are forgiven. THIS DO YE AS OFT AS YE DRINK IT IN REMEMBRANCE OF ME. That is, this sacred Rite I thought fit to appoint, and leave behind with you, as a memorial of me, and a monument of my love towards you, who took upon me your nature, that I might die for you, and shall shortly power out my soul to death, even as you have seen the wine which you now drink poured into the cup; that your souls may live, being refreshed with the virtue of my blood, as your bodies are strengthened, and your hearts cheered by the use of wine. This ordinance after my departure from you; shall serve to represent my death, and my love, (which is as strong as death) and the benefits thereof: wherefore I charge you, and all others, which shall profess my name; that, if you expect to enjoy those blessings, which my death is intended to procure for mankind, and which will certainly befall those, that do truly believe in me, they would not fail to testify their Faith in the use of this Sacrament, and apply to themselves the Salvation wrought by my death; this mystery being appointed as a means of conveying assurance, and sealing pardon. Do you then in your assemblies hereafter, as you have seen me do now amongst you. And let all Christians with reverence and due preparation attend and partake of these holy mysteries; knowing 'tis not an ordinary and slight business, but a matter of great concernment both to the honour of my name, and to their souls health: It being appointed for my remembrance, & their spiritual growth. Nor shall it be enough once, as in the other Sacrament of Baptism, or some few times, as a thing at your own choice, to partake of this holy Supper; but it is a thing must be often done, and you are frequently in this to commemorate my death, as oft as ever occasion shall be given: that so the memory of me may be continually celebrated in the Church, and you may be drawing virtue continually from me, grow up from grace to grace, from strength to strength: And accordingly the primitive Saints communicated every day, e Act. 2. 46. going about from house to house and breaking bread; And how can we call ourselves Christians, that far unlike them neglect so great Salvation and regard not the Blood of the Covenant, but to the disparagement of Christianity intermit the use of this sacred mystery; as of late we have done in very many congregations for several years through the fondness of some, whose ill tempered zeal had well near eaten up the house of God. 'Tis true Baptism needs not, indeed ought not to be reiterated, it being the laver of regeneration: Now it suffices once to be born: But the Sacrament of the Body and Blood of Christ, is called, and is, a Supper. Now he that sups once, hungers and thirsts again. We cannot, if we have a true spiritual hunger and thirst after the righteousness of Christ, but come to his Table and present ourselves before him often; at least at the three great Festivals of the Church, wherein the Birth, the Passion, & Resurrection of Christ, & the Descent of the Holy Ghost are remembered, as the jews custom was at their three great Feasts to come up to Jerusalem; if not every month, nay, every week, that every Lord's day, the Lord's Supper also might be administered, and we considering our frequent relapses into sin, might be often renewing our vows. Nay it were to be wished, that our lives were so pure, and our minds so taken up with heavenly things, and our feet (our affections, I mean) were so shod with the preparation of the Gospel, that we might with the ancient Christians make it our every day-meal, and say that Prayer in this sense, Give us this day our daily Bread. FINIS. Courteous Reader, THis whole Treatise having been taken by several all young pens from the Author's mouth, He doth not conceive himself obliged to maintain the Orthography every where: seeing 'twould have been an infinite task to have corrected all over to his own judgement. Truth is, scarce any language has greater variety, or indeed irregularity, of pronouncing & spelling the same syllables, than our English hath; which is some reason of the difficulty of it to strangers. I shall instance in some words diversely written; School and School, Virtue and Virtue, Common and Commune, etc. the one being the Vulgar, the other the Scholastic Orthography: Again, a different meaning sometimes diversifies the letter, though pronounced alike; as to lie down, and to tell a lie; foul dirty, and a fowl a bird, etc. But of this He shall have occasion to discourse more largely in his Tables of the English Tongue, wherein he hopes to give satisfaction to the Critic, and the Scholar. At present he thinks it his main concern to be Understood, and therefore takes no notice of any faults escaped, but such as may disturb the sense, and scandalise an Ordinanary Reader: and for the rest trusts himself to the candour of the Judicious. ERRATA. Pag. 8. l. 7. Deity r. duty. p. 14. l. 3. affection r. effusion. p, 21. l. 3. master r. maker. p. 39 l. 21. r. as much as. p. 44. l. 19 signicant r. significant. p. 48. l. 12. del. up even. p. 69. l. 10. r. their designs. p. 71. l. 18. r. our destiny. p. 97. l. 14. lift r. lighted. p. 106. l. 14., use r. use, p. 111. l. 5. meeted r. meted. p. 118. l. 3. serety r. serenity. p. 130. l. 7. doing r. doings. p. 135. l. 18. For r. So that. p. 157. l. 10. metonymical r. metaphorical. p. 182. l. 11. he that r. that he. p. 192. l. 10. soul r. soul, p. 233. l. 8. government r. garment. p. 439. l. 19 yet not r. not yet.